Selected quad for the lemma: religion_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
religion_n considerable_a father_n great_a 48 3 2.0931 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A74993 Certain select discourses on those most important subjects, requisite to be well understood by a catechist in laying the foundation of Christian knowledge in the minds of novitiates viz., First discourses on I. The doctrine of the two covenants both legal and evangelical, II. On faith and justification / by William Allen. Secondly, Discourses on I. The covenant of grace, or baptismal covenant, being chatechetical lectures on the preliminary questions and answers of the Church-Catechism : II. Three catechetical lectures on faith and justification / by Thomas Bray, D.D. Allen, William, d. 1686.; Bray, Thomas, 1658-1730. 1699 (1699) Wing A1055A; ESTC R172154 614,412 564

There are 37 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

principle_n of_o natural_a religion_n only_o and_o who_o have_v no_o other_o law_n do_v by_o nature_n the_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o law_n rom._n 2_o 14._o but_o to_o constitute_v a_o man_n true_o religious_a and_o to_o denominate_v his_o religion_n the_o christian_a religion_n it_o be_v far_a necessary_a that_o he_o moreover_o act_v upon_o christian_a principle_n such_o as_o not_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n only_o but_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o saviour_n do_v reveal_v unto_o we_o for_o in_o the_o day_n when_o he_o shall_v judge_v the_o secret_n of_o man_n by_o jesus_n christ_n it_o will_v be_v st._n paul_n tell_v we_o according_a to_o his_o gospel_n rom._n 2.16_o and_o so_o main_a a_o part_n in_o his_o gospel_n be_v the_o principle_n of_o reveal_v religion_n that_o he_o tell_v the_o corinthian_n he_o determine_v not_o to_o know_v any_o thing_n among_o they_o save_o jesus_n christ_n and_o he_o crucify_a 1_o cor._n 2.2_o that_o be_v the_o mean_n and_o method_n of_o our_o salvation_n by_o a_o crucify_a saviour_n which_o can_v be_v know_v only_o by_o revelation_n he_o be_v resolve_v shall_v be_v so_o much_o the_o subject_a of_o his_o preach_v among_o they_o that_o they_o may_v almost_o conclude_v he_o himself_o know_v nothing_o else_o and_o do_v not_o much_o care_n whether_o they_o do_v also_o thus_o the_o christian_a religion_n you_o see_v be_v out_o of_o christian_a principle_n to_o lead_v a_o holy_a good_a life_n nor_o three_o be_v it_o enough_o to_o render_v the_o religion_n of_o we_o christian_n complete_a necessary_a iii_o dependence_n upon_o the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n that_o our_o imperfect_a righteousness_n may_v be_v accept_v also_o necessary_a that_o by_o the_o force_n of_o good_a christian_a principle_n we_o lead_v good_a life_n but_o together_o therewith_o we_o must_v depend_v upon_o the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o father_n for_o we_o that_o our_o imperfect_a righteousness_n may_v be_v gracious_o accept_v to_o our_o justification_n for_o alas_o the_o best_a of_o we_o all_o must_v consider_v this_o that_o when_o we_o have_v do_v all_o that_o be_v command_v we_o we_o be_v but_o unprofitable_a servant_n luk._n 17.10_o but_o alas_o the_o best_a of_o we_o all_o do_v exceed_o fail_v in_o do_v all_o that_o be_v command_v we_o for_o we_o have_v all_o sin_v and_o come_v short_a of_o the_o glory_n or_o approbation_n of_o god_n rom._n 3.23_o and_o therefore_o as_o there_o be_v one_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n 1_o tim._n 2.5_o so_o we_o be_v strict_o command_v col._n 3.17_o that_o whatsoever_o we_o do_v in_o word_n or_o in_o deed_n we_o shall_v do_v all_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o particular_o as_o to_o that_o so_o considerable_a part_n of_o religion_n prayer_n it_o be_v ordain_v we_o be_v tell_v joh._n 15.16_o that_o whatsoever_o we_o shall_v ask_v of_o the_o father_n in_o his_o name_n he_o will_v give_v it_o we_o and_o also_o as_o to_o that_o other_o great_a duty_n of_o christian_a worship_n thanksgiving_n we_o be_v solemn_o enjoin_v eph._n 5.17.20_o as_o we_o will_v show_v ourselves_o not_o to_o be_v unwise_a but_o understand_v what_o the_o will_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v to_o give_v thanks_o always_o for_o all_o thing_n unto_o god_n the_o father_n in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o in_o he_o we_o have_v boldness_n and_o access_n with_o confidence_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o he_o eph._n 3.12_o the_o meaning_n of_o which_o and_o innumerable_a other_o place_n that_o may_v be_v produce_v to_o this_o purpose_n be_v this_o that_o consider_v our_o own_o vileness_n and_o unworthiness_n by_o reason_n of_o our_o sin_n we_o shall_v ground_v all_o our_o hope_n and_o expectation_n of_o favour_n and_o acceptance_n and_o reward_v sole_o upon_o christ_n that_o we_o shall_v offer_v all_o our_o deed_n to_o god_n as_o sacrifice_n and_o service_n unworthy_a of_o acceptance_n in_o themselves_o and_o as_o proceed_n from_o we_o but_o please_v and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n only_o for_o his_o sake_n christian_a such_o dependence_n the_o distinguish_a character_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a and_o now_o this_o i_o take_v to_o be_v the_o grand_a distinguish_a character_n of_o christianity_n which_o ought_v therefore_o never_o to_o be_v omit_v when_o we_o pretend_v to_o give_v a_o full_a account_n thereof_o as_o to_o a_o good_a moral_a life_n some_o pagan_n do_v arrive_v to_o great_a degree_n in_o virtue_n such_o as_o i_o wish_v may_v not_o rise_v in_o judgement_n against_o we_o christian_n now_o a-days_o and_o as_o for_o their_o act_v this_o upon_o good_a principle_n i_o can_v hardly_o imagine_v that_o those_o who_o have_v such_o noble_a and_o worthy_a thought_n of_o god_n and_o of_o their_o own_o soul_n and_o who_o place_v their_o happiness_n in_o purity_n and_o uprightness_n be_v so_o much_o want_v in_o that_o ingredient_n also_o of_o virtue_n viz._n the_o act_n it_o upon_o good_a principle_n as_o some_o do_v think_v they_o seem_v to_o i_o only_o to_o have_v want_v the_o knowledge_n and_o belief_n of_o some_o more_o and_o better_a principle_n which_o we_o do_v enjoy_v to_o render_v their_o virtue_n complete_a in_o that_o respect_n also_o but_o that_o the_o best_a of_o our_o performance_n be_v so_o imperfect_a that_o it_o be_v think_v requisite_a in_o the_o divine_a wisdom_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v become_v a_o sacrifice_n to_o expiate_v their_o gild_n and_o a_o mediator_n with_o his_o father_n to_o obtain_v their_o acceptance_n be_v what_o the_o proud_a heart_n of_o natural_a man_n never_o think_v of_o and_o no_o religion_n but_o the_o christian_a ever_o teach_v but_o on_o the_o contrary_a when_o they_o have_v do_v well_o they_o do_v proud_o overvalue_v it_o and_o do_v arrogant_o challenge_v the_o reward_n not_o as_o of_o grace_n but_o of_o debt_n god_n dependence_n upon_o christ_n necessary_a to_o take_v down_o a_o arrogant_a conceit_n of_o our_o own_o righteousness_n a_o temper_n of_o mind_n most_o displease_v to_o god_n and_o therefore_o to_o take_v down_o this_o proud_a and_o arrogant_a presumption_n in_o we_o so_o natural_a to_o man_n and_o so_o dishonourable_a to_o god_n together_o with_o his_o design_n of_o make_v we_o holy_a it_o be_v withal_o god_n intent_n by_o such_o a_o dispensation_n of_o his_o mercy_n as_o be_v give_v we_o in_o the_o gospel_n to_o create_v in_o we_o such_o a_o reliance_n and_o dependence_n upon_o christ_n for_o salvation_n as_o to_o expect_v it_o not_o on_o the_o account_n of_o our_o own_o holy_a performance_n but_o in_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o mediation_n with_o the_o father_n for_o we_o for_o so_o it_o be_v write_v 1_o cor._n 1.29_o 30_o 31._o that_o to_o the_o end_n that_o no_o flesh_n may_v glory_v in_o god_n presence_n jesus_n christ_n be_v by_o he_o make_v to_o we_o wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n and_o sanctification_n and_o redemption_n that_o so_o he_o that_o glori_v may_v glory_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o indeed_o it_o do_v exceed_o tend_v to_o the_o praise_n and_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n that_o he_o have_v make_v we_o accept_v in_o the_o belove_a as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o eph._n 1.6_o this_o do_v eminent_o set_v forth_o the_o exceed_a lustre_n of_o his_o mercy_n towards_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n that_o our_o imperfect_a if_o sincere_a obedience_n shall_v be_v accept_v through_o the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n it_o do_v utter_o exclude_v boast_v and_o all_o occasion_n of_o proud_a reflection_n on_o our_o part_n as_o if_o so_o mean_v a_o obedience_n as_o we_o can_v deserve_v such_o infinite_a reward_n as_o be_v make_v over_o to_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n a_o temper_n of_o mind_n which_o as_o it_o be_v very_o apt_a to_o get_v entertainment_n in_o our_o soul_n so_o ought_v of_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v suppress_v within_o we_o and_o thus_o i_o have_v give_v you_o a_o large_a account_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n than_o otherwise_o i_o shall_v have_v do_v that_o i_o may_v clear_v the_o way_n towards_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o those_o fundamental_a principle_n thereof_o which_o i_o tell_v you_o be_v the_o proper_a matter_n of_o a_o christian_a catechism_n and_o now_o answerable_o hereunto_o principle_n the_o nature_n of_o fundamental_a principle_n the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o our_o religion_n must_v be_v such_o doctrine_n as_o be_v well_o understand_v and_o thorough_o believe_v do_v most_o powerful_o and_o forcible_o persuade_v and_o move_v man_n to_o be_v thus_o religious_a as_o to_o tend_v to_o destroy_v the_o power_n of_o sin_n to_o mortify_v our_o lust_n and_o all_o wicked_a inclination_n within_o we_o to_o render_v we_o pious_a and_o devout_a towards_o god_n just_a and_o charitable_a and_o peaceable_a neighbour_n and_o sober_a chaste_a and_o orderly_a liver_n in_o this_o world_n and_o which_o shall_v
nor_o of_o defer_v the_o hear_n of_o good_a advice_n till_o another_o time_n like_o foelix_n who_o when_o st._n paul_n reason_v to_o he_o of_o righteousness_n temperance_n and_o judgement_n to_o come_v do_v shift_v off_o the_o apostle_n with_o a_o go_v thy_o way_n for_o this_o time_n when_o it_o be_v a_o more_o convenient_a season_n i_o will_v call_v for_o thou_o act_v 24.25_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o true_o resolute_a christian_a take_v david_n for_o his_o pattern_n who_o have_v think_v upon_o his_o way_n turn_v his_o foot_n unto_o god_n testimony_n and_o make_v haste_n and_o delay_v not_o to_o keep_v his_o commandment_n psal_n 119.59_o 60._o 6._o and_o he_o determine_v vigorous_o and_o speedy_o to_o betake_v himself_o to_o the_o execution_n of_o all_o those_o vow_n and_o promise_v make_v in_o his_o baptism_n the_o resolute_a christian_a make_v no_o exception_n of_o some_o particular_a lust_n some_o darling_n sin_n but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o one_o more_o than_o ordinary_a dear_a to_o he_o he_o determine_v immediate_o to_o mortify_v to_o cut_v off_o that_o though_o as_o near_o as_o his_o right_a arm_n and_o to_o pluck_v it_o out_o though_o as_o tender_a as_o his_o right_a eye_n he_o be_v not_o like_a king_n agrippa_n who_o st._n paul_n almost_o persuade_v to_o be_v a_o christian_n but_o he_o be_v both_o almost_o and_o altogether_o like_a st._n paul_n act_v 26.28_o 29._o who_o hold_v no_o correspondence_n and_o familiarity_n with_o any_o of_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o his_o own_o soul_n but_o be_v resolve_v to_o abandon_v they_o all_o alike_o to_o believe_v every_o article_n and_o to_o obey_v every_o command_n and_o thus_o the_o resolve_v christian_n determine_v to_o go_v on_o uniform_o in_o the_o discharge_n of_o all_o his_o engagement_n notwithstanding_o all_o opposition_n from_o the_o world_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o devil_n what_o mighty_a difficulty_n they_o will_v raise_v he_o how_o many_o block_n they_o will_v put_v in_o his_o way_n and_o what_o cunning_a stratagem_n the_o devil_n particular_o will_v make_v use_n of_o to_o divert_v he_o from_o his_o good_a purpose_n and_o to_o make_v he_o break_v his_o covenant_n with_o god_n you_o have_v already_o show_v you_o but_o the_o man_n of_o resolution_n be_v a_o man_n of_o courage_n and_o will_v not_o through_o fearfulness_n and_o cowardice_n give_v way_n in_o the_o day_n of_o battle_n but_o with_o st._n paul_n be_v persuade_v because_o he_o be_v resolve_v that_o neither_o death_n nor_o life_n nor_o angel_n nor_o principality_n nor_o power_n nor_o thing_n present_a nor_o thing_n to_o come_v nor_o height_n nor_o depth_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v he_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n rom._n 8.38_o 39_o last_o and_o now_o to_o render_v the_o christian_a resolution_n complete_a in_o all_o its_o part_n you_o must_v public_o declarative_o and_o solemn_o protest_v it_o to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o it_o be_v the_o full_a determination_n of_o your_o heart_n and_o mind_n to_o adhere_v faithful_o to_o god_n against_o all_o his_o enemy_n the_o world_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o devil_n that_o you_o will_v neither_o swerve_v from_o your_o faith_n nor_o flinch_v from_o your_o obedience_n public_a and_o declarative_a this_o resolution_n must_v be_v upon_o all_o just_a occasion_n as_o when_o profaneness_n and_o impiety_n grow_v bold_a and_o dare_a and_o when_o sinner_n become_v impudent_a and_o triumphant_a in_o immodest_a and_o immoral_a course_n and_o when_o the_o profession_n of_o religion_n be_v throw_v off_o as_o ridiculous_a and_o below_o man_n of_o sense_n and_o spirit_n in_o such_o a_o age_n as_o this_o i_o say_v there_o be_v occasion_n give_v to_o all_o the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o christ_n to_o own_o and_o declare_v themselves_o his_o disciple_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a of_o he_o and_o his_o doctrine_n and_o with_o the_o noble_a mattathias_n 1_o mac._n 2.19_o they_o must_v be_v ready_a to_o say_v though_o all_o the_o nation_n under_o the_o king_n dominion_n shall_v fall_v every_o one_o from_o the_o religion_n of_o their_o father_n yet_o will_v i_o and_o my_o son_n and_o my_o brethren_n walk_v in_o the_o covenant_n of_o our_o father_n a_o noble_a and_o heroic_a resolution_n worthy_a of_o we_o christian_n to_o follow_v and_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v put_v on_o at_o this_o time_n when_o the_o public_a affront_v to_o god_n and_o his_o religion_n be_v great_a than_o be_v ever_o in_o a_o state_n profess_v christianity_n and_o as_o the_o resolution_n must_v be_v open_o and_o declarative_o so_o it_o must_v be_v solemn_o make_v i_o mean_v that_o you_o who_o be_v now_o enter_v into_o a_o wicked_a world_n must_v take_v the_o first_o opportunity_n of_o a_o episcopal_a confirmation_n and_o must_v there_o in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o world_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o chief_a officer_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o bishop_n and_o before_o the_o whole_a assembly_n of_o christian_n there_o meet_v you_o must_v there_o i_o say_v as_o be_v prescribe_v in_o the_o office_n of_o confirmation_n with_o your_o own_o mouth_n and_o consent_n open_o recognize_v ratify_v and_o confirm_v the_o same_o vow_n that_o be_v make_v for_o you_o in_o your_o baptism_n the_o bishop_n will_v then_o demand_v of_o you_o in_o these_o word_n do_v you_o here_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o of_o this_o congregation_n renew_v the_o solemn_a promise_n and_o vow_v that_o be_v make_v in_o your_o name_n at_o your_o baptism_n ratify_v and_o confirm_v the_o same_o in_o your_o own_o person_n and_o acknowledge_v yourselves_o bind_v to_o believe_v and_o to_o do_v all_o those_o thing_n which_o your_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n than_o undertake_v for_o you_o and_o to_o this_o demand_v every_o one_o of_o you_o must_v audible_o answer_v i_o do_v and_o such_o as_o this_o it_o be_v probable_a may_v be_v that_o good_a profession_n which_o timothy_n have_v profess_v before_o many_o witness_n 1_o tim._n 6.12_o so_o that_o thus_o at_o length_n you_o see_v in_o what_o consist_v holy_a resolution_n the_o importance_n of_o these_o word_n i_o will_n three_o and_o i_o be_o now_o to_o show_v you_o that_o such_o resolution_n and_o so_o due_o form_v as_o this_o be_v a_o very_a powerful_a mean_n will_v go_v a_o great_a way_n towards_o the_o performance_n of_o our_o covenant_n with_o god_n and_o 1._o the_o very_a determine_n of_o the_o will_n with_o a_o fix_a and_o settle_a purpose_n have_v a_o great_a force_n in_o it_o to_o make_v we_o put_v in_o execution_n the_o most_o difficult_a part_n of_o our_o vow_n and_o promise_v we_o see_v even_o in_o worldly_a undertake_n where_o the_o advantage_n be_v very_o inconsiderable_a in_o comparison_n what_o difficulty_n man_n will_v go_v through_o when_o they_o be_v once_o bend_v upon_o a_o design_n whereas_o when_o person_n have_v no_o will_n nor_o mind_n to_o do_v a_o thing_n the_o wheel_n of_o action_n move_v but_o slow_o and_o their_o endeavour_n be_v very_o faint_a for_o why_o when_o man_n be_v full_o purpose_v and_o be_v set_v upon_o a_o thing_n than_o it_o be_v the_o subject_a of_o their_o care_n they_o lay_v all_o their_o measure_n and_o they_o muster_v up_o all_o their_o force_n to_o carry_v it_o on_o and_o what_o be_v equal_a with_o all_o this_o they_o provide_v against_o all_o attempt_n that_o shall_v be_v lay_v to_o ruin_v their_o design_n and_o if_o those_o who_o will_v be_v rich_a or_o great_a or_o honourable_a project_n a_o thousand_o way_n to_o carry_v their_o point_n leave_v no_o stone_n unturned_a refuse_v no_o hazard_n be_v discourage_v at_o no_o disappointment_n and_o cross_a accident_n shall_v not_o we_o who_o have_v infinite_o more_o valuable_a treasure_n lay_v up_o for_o we_o in_o heaven_n who_o have_v crown_n of_o glory_n propose_v to_o we_o if_o we_o excel_v in_o virtue_n shall_v we_o be_v faint_a and_o languid_a in_o our_o endeavour_n what_o can_v be_v the_o reason_n of_o this_o but_o that_o in_o the_o great_a business_n of_o religion_n man_n be_v not_o so_o much_o in_o earnest_n so_o resolute_a and_o intent_n as_o in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o their_o worldly_a advantage_n and_o satisfaction_n so_o resolute_o bend_v i_o say_v upon_o their_o improvement_n in_o religious_a perfection_n for_o this_o will_v go_v a_o great_a way_n towards_o their_o performance_n of_o their_o covenant_n with_o god_n particular_o to_o be_v full_o resolve_v upon_o it_o be_v absolute_o nccessary_a to_o baffle_v and_o discourage_v the_o devil_n in_o all_o his_o attempt_n upon_o we_o who_o in_o order_n to_o resist_v the_o apostle_n bid_v we_o be_v steadfast_a or_o resolute_a in_o the_o faith_n 1_o pet._n 5_o 9_o for_o indeed_o such_o be_v his_o resolution_n to_o destroy_v mankind_n and_o such_o especial_o be_v his_o pride_n in_o
a_o endless_a life_n of_o misery_n in_o another_o world_n this_o in_o few_o word_n be_v the_o main_a scope_n and_o purport_n of_o those_o great_a and_o fundamental_a truth_n of_o our_o religion_n the_o article_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n as_o they_o relate_v to_o the_o method_n of_o reconciliation_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man._n and_o the_o same_o be_v every_o one_o of_o they_o the_o most_o powerful_a motive_n to_o a_o holy_a life_n as_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o show_v life_n 2._o the_o most_o powerful_a motive_n to_o a_o holy_a life_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v undoubted_o persuade_v of_o the_o infallible_a truth_n and_o certainty_n of_o these_o main_a truth_n of_o scripture_n must_v in_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n be_v incumbent_a upon_o we_o all_o scripture_n be_v indeed_o give_v by_o inspiration_n of_o god_n and_o be_v profitable_a for_o doctrine_n for_o reproof_n for_o correction_n for_o instruction_n in_o righteousness_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_a thorough_o furnish_v unto_o all_o good_a work_n 2_o tim._n 3.16.17_o that_o be_v all_o the_o part_n of_o scripture_n be_v more_o or_o less_o serviceable_a to_o our_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o far_o indeed_o be_v it_o from_o a_o christian_a to_o entertain_v in_o his_o breast_n a_o doubt_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o any_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o his_o word_n however_o this_o undoubted_a persuasion_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o constitute_v a_o true_a believer_n must_v in_o a_o especial_a manner_n be_v have_v of_o the_o most_o important_a truth_n because_o more_o do_v depend_v upon_o our_o have_v a_o steadfast_a and_o unwavering_a belief_n of_o they_o than_o of_o other_o the_o belief_n of_o these_o be_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o the_o christian_a life_n and_o the_o distinguish_a character_n of_o a_o disciple_n of_o christ_n if_o therefore_o our_o faith_n shall_v stagger_v as_o to_o these_o upon_o every_o temptation_n there_o will_v ensue_v a_o fall_n if_o not_o a_o fall_v away_o and_o a_o total_a apostasy_n from_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o therefore_o the_o belief_n of_o these_o article_n concern_v the_o transaction_n between_o god_n the_o father_n and_o god_n the_o son_n with_o relation_n to_o man_n be_v make_v the_o great_a condition_n of_o man_n salvation_n this_o be_v life_n eternal_a to_o know_v that_o be_v to_o believe_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o thou_o have_v send_v joh._n 17.3_o indifferent_o 4._o to_o believe_v be_v to_o be_v persuade_v of_o all_o reveal_v truth_n in_o such_o manner_n and_o with_o such_o act_n of_o the_o mind_n as_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o those_o several_a truth_n 1._o it_o be_v firm_o to_o assent_v with_o the_o mind_n to_o all_o scripture-truths_n indifferent_o 4._o and_o as_o to_o believe_v be_v to_o be_v undoubted_o persuade_v of_o the_o infallible_a truth_n and_o certainty_n of_o divine_a revelation_n so_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n and_o with_o such_o act_n of_o the_o mind_n as_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o those_o several_a reveal_v truth_n for_o why_o the_o nature_n of_o those_o thing_n of_o who_o truth_n we_o be_v to_o be_v persuade_v be_v very_o different_a and_o therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o the_o act_n of_o mind_n which_o can_v but_o receive_v their_o stamp_n and_o modification_n from_o the_o thing_n believe_v must_v with_o reference_n thereunto_o be_v according_o various_a as_o 1._o there_o be_v several_a truth_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n especial_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o however_o they_o concern_v the_o jew_n whilst_o their_o religion_n be_v in_o force_n be_v not_o of_o that_o great_a concernment_n to_o we_o christian_n and_o therefore_o the_o belief_n or_o persuasion_n that_o may_v suffice_v we_o to_o have_v in_o respect_n of_o these_o or_o the_o like_a which_o be_v not_o of_o great_a importance_n be_v only_o a_o general_a firm_a assent_n of_o the_o understanding_n whereby_o we_o yield_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v certain_o so_o as_o god_n have_v declare_v because_o he_o who_o alone_o be_v true_a have_v speak_v it_o rom._n 3.4_o and_o indeed_o to_o all_o scripture-revelation_n indifferent_o consider_v and_o of_o what_o kind_n soever_o they_o be_v we_o must_v yield_v a_o firm_a assent_n because_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n declare_v they_o to_o we_o truth_n 2._o it_o be_v to_o consent_v with_o the_o will_n to_o live_v agreeable_o to_o the_o importance_n of_o practical_a truth_n 2._o but_o beside_o some_o thing_n of_o lesser_a moment_n there_o be_v several_a doctrine_n of_o weighty_a importance_n and_o concernment_n to_o we_o reveal_v in_o the_o holy_a writ_n concern_v which_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a that_o we_o only_o assent_v unto_o they_o with_o our_o mind_n that_o they_o be_v true_a but_o it_o be_v moreover_o necessary_a to_o give_v we_o the_o title_n of_o true_a believer_n that_o in_o reference_n to_o such_o concern_v truth_n we_o shall_v withal_o give_v up_o the_o consent_n of_o our_o will_n to_o live_v as_o be_v fit_a for_o person_n of_o such_o persuasion_n thus_o we_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o gospel_n that_o god_n have_v send_v unto_o we_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n to_o declare_v on_o what_o covenant_n and_o condition_n he_o will_v receive_v we_o to_o mercy_n and_o that_o this_o same_o jesus_n will_v hereafter_o come_v as_o a_o king_n in_o all_o pomp_n and_o glory_n to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a to_o pass_v sentence_n upon_o we_o either_o of_o happiness_n or_o of_o misery_n according_a as_o we_o have_v perform_v or_o not_o perform_v that_o gracious_a covenant_n he_o have_v make_v with_o we_o these_o be_v some_o of_o those_o weighty_a and_o important_a truth_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o which_o in_o the_o creed_n be_v particular_o propose_v to_o our_o belief_n and_o these_o that_o we_o may_v be_v say_v to_o believe_v and_o to_o be_v thorough_o persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o they_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a that_o we_o bare_o assent_v and_o yield_v that_o they_o be_v true_a but_o we_o must_v consent_v with_o our_o whole_a will_n that_o we_o will_v live_v and_o act_v as_o those_o who_o be_v full_o persuade_v of_o such_o truth_n that_o be_v if_o we_o be_v thorough_o persuade_v that_o jesus_n christ_n by_o be_v crucified_a dead_a and_o bury_v have_v purchase_v pardon_n for_o none_o other_o but_o those_o who_o abandon_v their_o evil_a way_n do_v in_o the_o sincerity_n of_o their_o heart_n endeavour_v to_o please_v he_o we_o shall_v consent_v to_o obey_v god_n holy_a will_n and_o commandment_n and_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o same_o all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n and_o again_o if_o we_o be_v undoubted_o persuade_v that_o he_o will_v final_o come_v to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a according_a to_o their_o work_n we_o shall_v hearty_o consent_v to_o conform_v ourselves_o in_o thought_n word_n and_o deed_n to_o his_o holy_a will_n and_o pleasure_n to_o be_v undoubted_o persuade_v of_o such_o truth_n as_o these_o which_o do_v so_o much_o concern_v we_o do_v almost_o inseparable_o carry_v in_o the_o notion_n of_o it_o a_o consent_n of_o the_o will_v to_o live_v as_o may_v be_v expect_v from_o such_o as_o be_v persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o such_o thing_n and_o a_o bare_a assent_n of_o the_o mind_n that_o those_o thing_n be_v so_o will_v not_o be_v enough_o to_o give_v a_o man_n the_o title_n of_o a_o true_a believer_n to_o believe_v indeed_o in_o propriety_n and_o strictness_n of_o speech_n may_v seem_v to_o signify_v a_o act_n of_o the_o intellect_n only_o assent_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o a_o proposition_n but_o in_o the_o scripture_n believe_v be_v a_o more_o practical_a word_n and_o include_v a_o compliance_n of_o the_o will_n with_o such_o practice_n and_o course_n as_o be_v consequent_a upon_o such_o belief_n if_o hearty_a and_o sincere_a and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 10.9_o 10._o call_v a_o believe_v with_o the_o heart_n for_o with_o the_o heart_n man_n believe_v unto_o righteousness_n and_o this_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o those_o mention_a act_n 11.21_o of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v that_o many_o believe_v and_o turn_v unto_o the_o lord_n not_o to_o instance_n here_o in_o abraham_n faith_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v speak_v hereafter_o so_o that_o in_o short_a the_o scriptural_a notion_n of_o faith_n or_o belief_n with_o respect_n to_o those_o practical_a truth_n reveal_v to_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o true_a serious_a resolute_a embrace_v of_o christianity_n not_o only_o a_o be_v persuade_v that_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v true_a but_o a_o consent_n and_o submit_v to_o his_o will_n and_o command_n in_o all_o thing_n it_o be_v a_o receive_v and_o accept_n of_o he_o as_o our_o prophet_n to_o instruct_v
immoderate_a affection_n but_o indulge_v themselves_o in_o these_o or_o any_o of_o these_o or_o the_o like_a they_o deceive_v themselves_o whatever_o their_o external_n conformity_n to_o divine_a precept_n otherwise_o may_v be_v they_o be_v the_o pure_a in_o heart_n that_o shall_v see_v god_n and_o they_o that_o be_v christ_n have_v crucify_v the_o flesh_n with_o the_o affection_n and_o lust_n god_n observe_v more_o what_o man_n be_v inward_o than_o what_o they_o be_v outward_o and_o judge_n of_o they_o according_o he_o be_v not_o a_o jew_n nor_o he_o a_o christian_n who_o be_v one_o outward_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o he_o who_o be_v so_o inward_o in_o heart_n who_o praise_n be_v not_o of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n rom._n 2.28_o 29._o and_o therefore_o st._n james_n count_v they_o but_o earthly_a sensual_a and_o devilish_a in_o their_o profession_n of_o christianity_n how_o high_a soever_o they_o profess_v and_o such_o as_o do_v lie_v against_o the_o truth_n that_o indulge_v bitter_a envy_v and_o strife_n though_o it_o be_v but_o in_o their_o heart_n jam._n 3.14_o 15._o and_o if_o lust_v and_o passion_n within_o shall_v break_v out_o in_o a_o unbridled_a tongue_n in_o slander_v revile_v backbiting_a evil-speaking_a rash_a and_o uncharitable_a censure_v or_o the_o like_a how_o religious_a soever_o such_o a_o man_n may_v otherwise_o seem_v to_o himself_o or_o other_o yet_o st._n james_n have_v plain_o determine_v his_o case_n such_o a_o one_o have_v deceive_v his_o own_o heart_n and_o his_o religion_n be_v vain_a jam._n 2.26_o mat._n 5.22_o man_n may_v go_v a_o great_a way_n in_o religion_n yea_o so_o far_o as_o until_o they_o be_v not_o far_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n yea_o many_o shall_v seek_v to_o enter_v in_o by_o do_v many_o thing_n in_o order_n thereto_o and_o yet_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a for_o want_v of_o strive_v to_o do_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a thereto_o and_o for_o that_o very_a reason_n and_o because_o of_o the_o great_a danger_n of_o christian_n fall_v short_a though_o they_o have_v go_v far_o and_o do_v much_o be_v they_o so_o earnest_o exhort_v to_o work_v out_o or_o to_o work_v through_o their_o own_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_v with_o a_o fear_n of_o fall_v short_a phil._n 2.12_o and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o to_o fear_v even_o a_o seem_a to_o come_v short_a of_o the_o promise_a rest_n heb._n 4.1_o let_v we_o therefore_o fear_n lest_o a_o promise_n be_v leave_v we_o of_o enter_v into_o his_o rest_n any_o of_o you_o shall_v seem_v to_o come_v short_a of_o it_o the_o matter_n be_v of_o that_o huge_a consequence_n that_o every_o wise_a man_n that_o do_v not_o despise_v his_o own_o soul_n shall_v be_v afraid_a to_o do_v or_o omit_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o have_v but_o the_o least_o seem_a show_n or_o appearance_n of_o put_v his_o salvation_n into_o any_o hazard_n and_o therefore_o all_n diligence_n be_v not_o too_o much_o for_o the_o wise_a man_n live_v to_o use_v to_o make_v his_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a 2_o pet._n 1.10_o thus_o when_o man_n understanding_n be_v bribe_v by_o their_o corrupt_a will_n they_o then_o take_v up_o with_o a_o partial_a faith_n a_o partial_a repentance_n and_o a_o partial_a obedience_n instead_o of_o that_o which_o be_v evangelical_o complete_a and_o hope_v it_o be_v a_o fulfil_n of_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o promise_n and_o when_o man_n shut_v their_o own_o eye_n and_o stop_v their_o own_o ear_n against_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o word_n of_o salvation_n that_o they_o may_v the_o more_o quiet_o enjoy_v the_o pleasure_n of_o any_o sin_n god_n many_o time_n in_o his_o righteous_a judgement_n after_o much_o strive_v and_o long-suffering_a withdraw_v the_o assistance_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o spirit_n and_o leave_v they_o to_o themselves_o and_o their_o own_o delusion_n and_o to_o be_v practise_v upon_o by_o the_o devil_n for_o their_o far_a harden_v according_a to_o that_o dreadful_a prophecy_n in_o isa_n 6.9_o 10._o mention_v not_o less_o than_o five_o or_o six_o time_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n mat._n 13.14_o mar._n 4.12_o luke_n 8.10_o joh._n 12.40_o act_n 28.26_o rom._n 11.8_o go_v tell_v this_o people_n hear_v you_o indeed_o but_o understand_v not_o and_o see_v you_o indeed_o but_o perceive_v not_o make_v the_o heart_n of_o this_o people_n fat_a and_o make_v their_o ear_n heavy_a and_o shut_v their_o eye_n etc._n etc._n when_o man_n will_v not_o receive_v the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v but_o have_v pleasure_n in_o unrighteousness_n god_n sometime_o send_v they_o strong_a delusion_n to_o believe_v a_o lie_n 2_o thes_n 2.10_o 11_o 12._o whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o good-ground_n hearer_n be_v describe_v by_o the_o honesty_n of_o the_o heart_n into_o which_o they_o receive_v the_o word_n they_o study_v no_o trick_n or_o shift_n nor_o use_v any_o shuffle_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o any_o dishonest_a interest_n to_o evade_v the_o plain_a truth_n but_o be_v content_a that_o shall_v take_v place_n and_o all_o other_o thing_n give_v place_n to_o it_o they_o suffer_v that_o word_n which_o be_v receive_v and_o assent_v to_o in_o the_o judgement_n before_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n to_o sink_v down_o into_o their_o heart_n by_o which_o the_o will_n and_o affection_n become_v change_v chap._n iu._n how_o and_o after_o what_o manner_n faith_n in_o the_o understanding_n work_v saving_o upon_o the_o will._n the_o faith_n of_o assent_n in_o the_o understanding_n work_v a_o consent_n in_o the_o will_n unto_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o promise_n by_o its_o operative_a and_o affect_a influence_n upon_o the_o passion_n of_o hope_n fear_v and_o love_n the_o powerful_a principle_n of_o action_n in_o man._n for_o though_o faith_n in_o the_o understanding_n be_v the_o first_o principle_n of_o action_n as_o christian_a yet_o not_o that_o but_o the_o will_n as_o it_o be_v affect_v with_o hope_n fear_v or_o love_n be_v the_o next_o and_o immediate_a principle_n of_o action_n the_o understanding_n when_o it_o right_o perform_v its_o office_n do_v not_o only_o assent_v unto_o the_o truth_n of_o divine_a revelation_n upon_o competent_a evidence_n that_o it_o be_v from_o god_n but_o also_o consider_v and_o weigh_v as_o in_o a_o balance_n the_o import_n of_o it_o and_o how_o a_o man_n be_v concern_v in_o it_o as_o whether_o it_o betoken_v good_a or_o evil_a to_o he_o and_o how_o much_o and_o upon_o what_o term_n whether_o absolute_o or_o conditional_o and_o what_o the_o condition_n be_v all_o which_o when_o bring_v down_o to_o the_o subordinate_a faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o will_n and_o affection_n be_v apt_a to_o affect_v they_o and_o work_v upon_o they_o more_o or_o less_o according_a as_o the_o thing_n believe_v be_v apprehend_v more_o or_o less_o to_o concern_v a_o man._n and_o the_o thing_n believe_v eternal_a life_n and_o eternal_a death_n in_o another_o world_n be_v invisible_a and_o absent_a thing_n it_o be_v a_o man_n faith_n touch_v the_o reality_n of_o they_o that_o supply_v the_o room_n or_o absence_n of_o sense_n for_o faith_n be_v the_o substance_n of_o thing_n hope_v for_o and_o the_o evidence_n of_o thing_n not_o see_v heb._n 11.1_o we_o neither_o see_v nor_o feel_v the_o glorious_a thing_n promise_v nor_o the_o dreadful_a thing_n threaten_v in_o another_o world_n otherwise_o than_o by_o faith_n which_o give_v the_o believer_n a_o prospect_n of_o they_o but_o a_o man_n by_o his_o faith_n in_o that_o gospel_n by_o which_o they_o be_v reveal_v have_v a_o foresight_n of_o they_o as_o abraham_n have_v of_o christ_n day_n and_o that_o fill_v the_o soul_n with_o hope_n and_o fear_v and_o a_o sense_n of_o god_n love_n in_o give_v such_o a_o hope_n and_o this_o hope_n fear_v and_o love_n puts_z man_n upon_z more_o or_o less_o care_n diligence_n and_o industry_n in_o do_v what_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o obtain_n of_o the_o one_o and_o escape_v the_o other_o as_o they_o be_v more_o or_o less_o influence_v by_o a_o faith_n that_o be_v weak_a or_o strong_a or_o more_o or_o less_o active_a and_o exercise_v about_o these_o thing_n and_o hence_o come_v that_o change_n which_o be_v make_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o life_n of_o true_a believer_n who_o walk_v by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o sight_n that_o be_v they_o govern_v their_o life_n by_o the_o belief_n of_o invisible_a and_o not_o sensible_a thing_n 2_o cor._n 5.7_o this_o in_o general_n but_o more_o particular_o the_o faith_n of_o assent_n in_o the_o understanding_n work_v the_o faith_n of_o consent_n in_o the_o will_n by_o its_o operation_n upon_o those_o three_o passion_n or_o affection_n of_o the_o will_n hope_v fear_v and_o love_n 1._o as_o a_o firm_a assent_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n promise_n through_o christ_n of_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n upon_o
matter_n of_o which_o the_o ancient_a catechism_n do_v most_o consist_v even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o such_o be_v the_o catechism_n you_o be_v now_o learning_n as_o to_o the_o ancient_a catechise_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n as_o it_o be_v plain_a from_o the_o example_n of_o theophilus_n luk._n 1.4_o that_o the_o new_a convert_v receive_v their_o first_o notion_n of_o religion_n by_o catechise_v as_o be_v before_o observe_v so_o rom._n 6.17_o we_o read_v of_o a_o form_n of_o doctrine_n that_o be_v deliver_v to_o they_o which_o the_o best_a interpreter_n suppose_v to_o have_v be_v a_o summary_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n or_o body_n of_o catechetical_a point_n and_o what_o those_o point_n be_v which_o they_o first_o teach_v they_o we_o have_v express_o lay_v down_o heb._n 6.1_o 2._o from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o those_o first_o principle_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o very_a same_o i_o have_v now_o mention_v viz._n the_o doctrine_n of_o repentance_n faith_n and_o of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o be_v also_o call_v there_o the_o foundation_n which_o be_v lay_v the_o apostle_n tell_v they_o he_o will_v go_v on_o to_o perfect_v they_o by_o other_o teach_v and_o such_o a_o general_n instruction_n also_o be_v the_o catechism_n you_o be_v now_o learning_n and_o which_o i_o be_o at_o present_a about_o to_o expound_v to_o you_o church-catechism_n and_o such_o be_v our_o church-catechism_n you_o have_v therein_o indeed_o give_v you_o a_o summary_n doctrine_n of_o all_o the_o fundamental_a and_o necessary_a article_n of_o christianity_n and_o the_o seed_n of_o these_o catechetical_a point_n if_o they_o be_v but_o receive_v into_o well-disposed_a heart_n will_v in_o time_n by_o god_n grace_n produce_v a_o plentiful_a crop_n of_o save_a knowledge_n so_o that_o i_o may_v very_o safe_o affirm_v it_o that_o whosoever_o of_o you_o shall_v learn_v to_o understand_v thorough_o his_o church-catechism_n shall_v be_v sufficient_o instruct_v to_o salvation_n and_o whosoever_o shall_v live_v according_a to_o those_o principle_n therein_o teach_v need_v no_o more_o to_o render_v he_o a_o good_a christian_n in_o this_o world_n and_o a_o happy_a saint_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v and_o so_o much_o for_o the_o first_o point_n in_o my_o description_n of_o a_o catechism_n viz._n the_o matter_n of_o which_o a_o catechism_n be_v to_o consist_v that_o it_o be_v a_o general_n instruction_n in_o the_o fundamental_a and_o necessary_a principle_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n second_o the_o next_o be_v the_o person_n that_o be_v to_o be_v catechize_v person_n the_o person_n that_o be_v to_o be_v catechize_v be_v every_o person_n and_o in_o the_o definition_n i_o have_v give_v of_o a_o catechism_n it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o instruction_n necessary_a to_o be_v learned_a of_o every_o person_n it_o be_v very_o certain_a that_o whoever_o will_v be_v skilful_a in_o any_o art_n or_o science_n whatsoever_o he_o must_v endeavour_v first_o to_o understand_v the_o principle_n of_o it_o this_o be_v every_o day_n experience_n he_o that_o will_v be_v a_o good_a grammarian_n or_o latin_a scholar_n must_v first_o learn_v to_o understand_v his_o grammar_n rule_n you_o know_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o read_v at_o all_o before_o you_o know_v your_o letter_n or_o to_o read_v well_o till_o you_o can_v spell_v or_o distinguish_v between_o the_o syllable_n in_o like_a manner_n he_o that_o will_v be_v a_o know_v and_o withal_o a_o stable_n christian_n as_o it_o be_v every_o body_n infinite_a concern_v to_o be_v both_o he_o must_v make_v it_o his_o care_n and_o business_n to_o be_v come_v well_o instruct_v in_o the_o principle_n those_o which_o we_o call_v the_o fundamental_a point_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n that_o the_o way_n to_o perfection_n in_o the_o christian_a as_o well_o as_o other_o doctrine_n be_v to_o begin_v with_o the_o principle_n of_o it_o appear_v from_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n heb._n 6.1_o leave_v the_o principle_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n let_v we_o go_v on_o to_o perfection_n hereby_o you_o see_v that_o his_o method_n in_o teach_v be_v first_o to_o begin_v with_o ground_v in_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o then_o to_o proceed_v to_o high_a thing_n and_o the_o same_o method_n the_o apostle_n take_v in_o teach_v of_o religion_n the_o same_o must_v the_o disciple_n be_v suppose_v to_o do_v in_o learning_n of_o it_o if_o the_o apostle_n begin_v with_o teach_v of_o principle_n the_o disciple_n must_v begin_v with_o the_o learning_n of_o they_o and_o the_o wisdom_n of_o lay_v first_o a_o foundation_n of_o good_a principle_n and_o build_v our_o religion_n upon_o they_o and_o the_o folly_n on_o the_o other_o side_n of_o not_o lay_v a_o good_a foundation_n of_o such_o be_v sufficient_o represent_v in_o that_o parable_n of_o our_o saviour_n mat._n 7.24_o the_o wise_a man_n he_o there_o tell_v we_o build_v his_o house_n upon_o a_o rock_n or_o a_o foundation_n of_o good_a principle_n and_o when_o the_o rain_n descend_v and_o flood_n come_v and_o wind_n blue_a and_o beat_v upon_o that_o house_n it_o fall_v not_o for_o it_o be_v found_v upon_o a_o rock_n but_o the_o foolish_a man_n he_o build_v his_o house_n upon_o the_o sand_n upon_o none_o at_o all_o or_o a_o very_a sorry_a foundation_n and_o mark_v the_o fate_n of_o that_o man_n religion_n when_o the_o flood_n come_v and_o the_o wind_n blue_a and_o beat_v upon_o that_o house_n it_o sell_v and_o great_a be_v the_o fall_n of_o it_o a_o person_n well_o ground_v in_o the_o principle_n of_o religion_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o bear_v the_o shock_n of_o the_o fierce_a temptation_n but_o a_o person_n of_o no_o principle_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o withstand_v the_o least_o this_o parable_n do_v excellent_o well_o set_v forth_o the_o necessity_n of_o be_v well_o ground_v in_o religious_a principle_n instruction_n the_o necessity_n of_o every_o person_n be_v well_o ground_v in_o religious_a principle_n by_o catechetical_a instruction_n which_o can_v only_o be_v do_v i_o have_v show_v you_o by_o learning_n of_o the_o catechism_n i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o person_n shall_v be_v always_o in_o their_o catechism_n but_o when_o they_o have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n there_o so_o that_o they_o can_v only_o say_v but_o understand_v it_o by_o have_v have_v it_o explain_v to_o they_o my_o advice_n then_o with_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o heb._n 6.1_o be_v that_o leave_v the_o principle_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n they_o proceed_v to_o perfection_n and_o far_a to_o improve_v their_o knowledge_n in_o divine_a thing_n but_o this_o i_o say_v that_o every_o christian_a must_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o his_o religion_n here_o and_o if_o this_o have_v not_o be_v yet_o do_v it_o be_v better_a late_o than_o never_o ignorance_n the_o contempt_n hereof_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o pride_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o ignorance_n those_o who_o think_v themselves_o too_o wise_a already_o or_o too_o good_a to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o so_o mean_v a_o instruction_n as_o they_o ignorant_o esteem_v catechise_v to_o be_v i_o can_v never_o promise_v myself_o much_o good_a from_o they_o such_o indeed_o be_v general_o self-conceited_a enough_o of_o their_o own_o skill_n and_o knowledge_n but_o it_o be_v scarce_o to_o be_v imagine_v th●●_n they_o shall_v not_o remain_v very_o ignorant_a in_o all_o sober_a and_o substantial_a truth_n nor_o can_v they_o but_o be_v subject_a to_o fall_v into_o the_o gross_a heresy_n and_o error_n be_v untaught_a in_o those_o principle_n which_o be_v the_o only_a foundation_n of_o all_o save_a knowledge_n and_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o touchstone_n to_o try_v false_a opinion_n by_o true_a it_o be_v heart_n the_o seed_n of_o virtue_n and_o principle_n of_o religion_n can_v never_o be_v too_o soon_o sow_o in_o child_n heart_n child_n be_v the_o person_n that_o we_o do_v now_o common_o instruct_v this_o way_n and_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o even_a child_n shall_v be_v so_o instruct_v for_o the_o seed_n of_o virtue_n and_o principle_n of_o religion_n can_v never_o be_v too_o soon_o sow_o in_o their_o heart_n that_o if_o possible_a religion_n may_v have_v the_o first_o possession_n of_o their_o soul_n which_o be_v a_o great_a advantage_n before_o that_o evil_a example_n and_o bad_a custom_n have_v corrupt_v they_o but_o in_o regard_n child_n though_o they_o learn_v the_o word_n can_v understand_v but_o little_a of_o the_o mean_v and_o the_o principle_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n deep_a mystery_n hard_o to_o be_v understand_v the_o fit_a person_n to_o receive_v a_o exposition_n of_o these_o thing_n must_v be_v youth_n grow_v up_o to_o some_o year_n of_o discretion_n discretion_n however_o a_o clear_a understanding_n of_o catechetical_a doctrine_n be_v attainable_a only_a
11.25_o that_o be_v that_o it_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o that_o covenant_n which_o be_v purchase_v by_o and_o ratify_v in_o his_o blood_n but_o such_o as_o have_v be_v thorough_o catechize_v as_o they_o have_v be_v make_v to_o understand_v the_o term_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n both_o the_o inestimable_a privilege_n make_v over_o to_o they_o on_o god_n part_n and_o those_o very_a reasonable_a condition_n to_o be_v perform_v on_o their_o own_o so_o they_o have_v be_v also_o teach_v that_o one_o main_a end_n of_o communicate_v in_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v to_o ratify_v and_o confirm_v and_o seal_v this_o covenant_n of_o grace_n between_o god_n and_o us._n and_o then_o those_o that_o have_v be_v teach_v this_o can_v come_v ignorant_o to_o the_o lord_n supper_n nor_o consequent_o be_v in_o such_o danger_n of_o come_v unworthy_o unworthy_o i._o of_o receive_v unworthy_o for_o ignorance_n of_o the_o nature_n and_o consequence_n of_o that_o bless_a ordinance_n be_v general_o as_o much_o the_o cause_n as_o any_o thing_n that_o any_o do_v approach_v unworthy_o to_o it_o nor_o if_o the_o people_n of_o our_o nation_n have_v be_v ever_o thorough_o catechize_v all_o ii_o of_o not_o receive_v at_o all_o will_v so_o many_o abstain_v as_o common_o do_v from_o ever_o come_v at_o all_o for_o if_o all_o man_n be_v thorough_o instruct_v in_o the_o nature_n term_n and_o condition_n of_o their_o covenant_n which_o it_o be_v the_o business_n of_o catechise_v to_o do_v as_o they_o will_v then_o easy_o discern_v that_o it_o be_v the_o high_a and_o most_o inestimable_a privilege_n in_o the_o world_n to_o be_v take_v into_o such_o a_o covenant_n of_o grace_n wherein_o they_o have_v god_n almighty_a engage_v himself_o and_o put_v his_o seal_n to_o it_o in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o make_v good_a to_o they_o the_o most_o inestimable_a blessing_n pardon_v and_o happiness_n on_o the_o most_o reasonable_a condition_n repentance_n faith_n and_o gospel_n obedience_n so_o if_o they_o do_v right_o understand_v this_o they_o will_v then_o account_v it_o as_o it_o real_o be_v the_o high_a privilege_n in_o the_o world_n to_o be_v confederate_n with_o god_n in_o so_o advantageous_a a_o covenant_n and_o will_v think_v they_o can_v never_o often_o enough_o partake_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n whereby_o the_o oftener_o they_o come_v they_o do_v more_o and_o more_o secure_a to_o themselves_o those_o inestimable_a benefit_n make_v over_o to_o we_o by_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o engage_v as_o themselves_o more_o close_o to_o god_n so_o god_n himself_o more_o inviolable_o as_o it_o be_v to_o make_v good_a those_o blessing_n to_o they_o no_o sure_o if_o all_o christian_n have_v be_v but_o catechize_v in_o those_o point_n both_o what_o a_o mighty_a privilege_n it_o be_v to_o be_v in_o covenant_n with_o god_n and_o that_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o rite_n of_o god_n own_o appointment_n of_o confirm_v to_o ourselves_o all_o the_o benefit_n of_o this_o covenant_n we_o shall_v then_o have_v our_o people_n daily_o crowd_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n which_o they_o do_v now_o so_o profane_o turn_v their_o back_n upon_o we_o shall_v not_o then_o need_v so_o much_o to_o invite_v and_o entreat_v person_n to_o come_v but_o they_o will_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n embrace_v all_o opportunity_n of_o more_o and_o more_o ensure_v to_o themselves_o these_o most_o invaluable_a benefit_n by_o often_o come_v in_o a_o word_n a_o man_n be_v no_o more_o fit_a to_o partake_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n that_o do_v not_o well_o understand_v the_o nature_n and_o term_n of_o that_o covenant_n which_o he_o do_v therein_o ratify_v and_o seal_v with_o god_n than_o he_o be_v fit_a to_o seal_v to_o covenant_n and_o lease_n who_o condition_n and_o obligation_n he_o never_o have_v so_o much_o as_o read_v over_o to_o he_o nor_o do_v he_o know_v they_o but_o catechise_v be_v the_o appoint_a and_o most_o proper_a mean_n of_o gain_v a_o competent_a measure_n of_o understanding_n in_o the_o nature_n and_o term_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n without_o have_v be_v catechize_v therefore_o a_o man_n can_v be_v well_o expect_v to_o partake_v worthy_o of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o this_o be_v the_o second_o use_n to_o which_o catechise_v do_v therefore_o serve_v to_o prepare_v you_o that_o you_o may_v be_v sit_v and_o worthy_a communicant_n at_o the_o lord_n table_n three_o preach_v iii_o catechise_v be_v requisite_a to_o person_n be_v edifyed_a by_o preach_v catechise_v be_v very_o useful_a to_o render_v you_o capable_a to_o receive_v edification_n by_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o word_n and_o to_o your_o profit_v by_o sermon_n that_o be_v certain_o the_o true_a and_o only_o edify_v preach_v which_o do_v most_o plain_o lay_v open_a before_o you_o the_o mean_v the_o reason_n and_o the_o importance_n of_o any_o article_n of_o your_o faith_n whereby_o you_o may_v best_o know_v god_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o serve_v he_o and_o which_o do_v most_o clear_o explain_v to_o you_o the_o nature_n and_o true_a extent_n of_o your_o christian_a duty_n whereby_o you_o may_v know_v what_o it_o be_v you_o have_v to_o do_v and_o may_v be_v free_v from_o all_o causeless_a doubt_n and_o scruple_n about_o the_o way_n of_o your_o happiness_n and_o last_o which_o do_v give_v you_o the_o most_o convince_a argument_n and_o reason_n to_o move_v and_o stir_v you_o up_o faithful_o to_o discharge_v your_o manifold_a obligation_n to_o god_n your_o neighbour_n and_o yourselves_o such_o as_o this_o be_v true_o edify_v preach_v because_o this_o will_n if_o you_o do_v due_o attend_v to_o it_o build_v you_o up_o perfect_a christian_n in_o the_o knowledge_n and_o practice_n of_o true_a religion_n and_o now_o one_o that_o have_v be_v catechize_v so_o as_o to_o have_v a_o general_a understanding_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o covenant_n when_o such_o a_o one_o hear_v a_o sermon_n upon_o any_o particular_a point_n of_o that_o covenant_n whereby_o he_o have_v more_o full_o explain_v to_o he_o the_o nature_n and_o attribute_n of_o god_n and_o his_o saviour_n mediation_n and_o of_o his_o own_o duty_n than_o former_o in_o catechise_v can_v be_v do_v and_o when_o he_o hear_v any_o good_a reason_n and_o motive_n give_v whereby_o he_o shall_v serious_o apply_v himself_o to_o live_v so_o and_o so_o as_o become_v the_o servant_n of_o such_o a_o god_n and_o such_o a_o saviour_n and_o one_o that_o profess_v to_o pay_v he_o such_o obedience_n when_o a_o catechize_v understanding_n person_n hear_v such_o preach_a be_v this_o he_o find_v his_o understanding_n more_o enlighten_v with_o heavenly_a truth_n and_o his_o will_n and_o affection_n more_o bend_v upon_o do_v as_o he_o have_v be_v instruct_v and_o so_o as_o in_o all_o reason_n he_o ought_v he_o account_v such_o a_o sermon_n true_o edify_v and_o himself_o edify_v thereby_o but_o the_o ignorant_a and_o uncatechize_v part_n of_o the_o world_n when_o they_o hear_v a_o sermon_n for_o want_n of_o discretion_n to_o judge_v of_o its_o real_a worth_n such_o look_v only_o at_o some_o such_o trifle_a consideration_n as_o the_o vehemence_n and_o noise_n of_o the_o speaker_n and_o if_o there_o be_v but_o enough_o of_o that_o as_o general_o there_o be_v the_o great_a show_n where_o there_o be_v the_o least_o of_o substance_n though_o they_o be_v make_v to_o know_v no_o more_o than_o they_o do_v before_o of_o the_o importance_n of_o any_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n or_o of_o the_o nature_n and_o extent_n of_o any_o duty_n of_o religion_n they_o be_v however_o stun_v into_o admiration_n of_o they_o know_v not_o what_o utter_o dis-regarding_a the_o most_o instruct_v and_o real_o edify_v preach_v to_o the_o very_a great_a prejudice_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o the_o utter_a hindrance_n of_o their_o improvement_n by_o our_o ministry_n in_o all_o useful_a and_o substantial_a knowledge_n beside_o it_o be_v a_o mighty_a help_n to_o the_o gain_v understanding_n in_o any_o science_n whatsoever_o especial_o the_o christian_a religion_n to_o have_v a_o general_a view_n give_v one_o of_o the_o whole_a which_o it_o be_v the_o business_n of_o catechise_v to_o do_v and_o to_o see_v how_o one_o point_n depend_v upon_o another_o and_o do_v all_o sweet_o agree_v together_o for_o not_o to_o mention_v other_o advantage_n by_o this_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o judge_v the_o better_a of_o the_o usefulness_n and_o weight_n of_o any_o sermon_n or_o religious_a discourse_n on_o any_o particular_a point_n as_o whether_o it_o do_v thorough_o explain_v it_o or_o do_v not_o take_v in_o what_o do_v more_o proper_o belong_v to_o some_o other_o matter_n and_o by_o this_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v able_a also_o to_o judge_v whether_o the_o preacher_n build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n gold_n silver_n precious_a stone_n or_o wood_n hay_o
and_o stubble_n and_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o distinguish_v between_o and_o separate_v the_o refuse_n and_o dross_n of_o a_o sermon_n and_o discourse_n from_o the_o weighty_a and_o substantial_a part_n of_o it_o a_o skill_n which_o as_o it_o be_v of_o vast_a consequence_n so_o it_o be_v but_o little_o understand_v by_o the_o generality_n of_o people_n for_o want_v of_o have_v be_v well_o catechize_v and_o instruct_v in_o the_o fundamental_o of_o christian_a religion_n error_n iv_o catechise_v necessary_a to_o prevent_v be_v seduce_v into_o dangerous_a error_n four_o catechise_v be_v also_o requisite_a to_o secure_v you_o from_o be_v at_o any_o time_n mislead_v into_o dangerous_a heresy_n and_o error_n by_o the_o sermon_n and_o discourse_n of_o man_n crafty_a to_o deceive_v to_o the_o infinite_a peril_n of_o your_o immortal_a soul_n there_o must_v be_v heresy_n the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o 1_o cor._n 11.19_o that_o they_o which_o be_v approve_v may_v be_v make_v manifest_a for_o god_n do_v permit_v they_o for_o our_o trial_n whether_o we_o will_v stand_v steadfast_a to_o the_o truth_n and_o our_o saviour_n bid_v we_o matth._n 24.45_o take_v heed_n that_o no_o man_n deceive_v we_o for_o many_o shall_v come_v in_o my_o name_n say_v he_o that_o be_v will_v pretend_v to_o be_v minister_n of_o christ_n and_o shall_v deceive_v many_o they_o will_v come_v with_o all_o deceiveableness_n the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o 2_o thess_n 2.10_o with_o so_o much_o artifice_n and_o cunning_a that_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a they_o shall_v deceive_v the_o very_a elect_n mat._n 24.24_o particular_o of_o this_o sort_n be_v they_o st._n paul_n warn_v we_o 2_o tim._n 3.6_o which_o creep_v into_o house_n and_o lead_v captive_a silly_a woman_n lade_v with_o sin_n led_z away_o with_o divers_a lust_n ever_o learning_n and_o never_o able_a to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n a_o character_n than_o which_o nothing_o can_v more_o exact_o agree_v to_o the_o seducer_n of_o our_o time_n and_o the_o person_n who_o they_o do_v usual_o practise_v upon_o to_o draw_v aside_o which_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n ignorant_a woman_n and_o the_o effect_v it_o have_v upon_o their_o disciple_n and_o follower_n which_o be_v to_o make_v they_o great_a talker_n and_o pretender_n to_o extraordinary_a knowledge_n but_o in_o reality_n not_o one_o jott_n wise_a in_o the_o grand_a point_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o now_o if_o any_o of_o these_o cunning_a deceiver_n shall_v come_v to_o any_o of_o you_o and_o endeavour_v to_o pervert_v you_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a you_o shall_v escape_v their_o wiles_n except_o you_o shall_v be_v well_o principled_a so_o as_o thorough_o to_o understand_v the_o foundation_n article_n of_o your_o religion_n but_o hold_v fast_o that_o form_n of_o sound_a word_n 2_o tim._n 1.13_o have_v well_o imbibe_v the_o principle_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v teach_v in_o your_o catechism_n by_o these_o as_o by_o a_o certain_a touchstone_n you_o will_v be_v able_a to_o discover_v what_o be_v true_a and_o what_o be_v erroneous_a doctrine_n those_o that_o agree_v with_o this_o analogy_n of_o faith_n you_o may_v be_v certain_a be_v sound_n what_o do_v contradict_v they_o you_o may_v be_v sure_o be_v false_a doctrine_n catechise_v be_v a_o excellent_a mean_n say_v mr._n gouge_n to_o keep_v person_n from_o the_o error_n and_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o time_n for_o person_n well_o catechize_v and_o instruct_v in_o the_o principle_n of_o religion_n be_v in_o a_o great_a measure_n antidote_v against_o the_o poison_n of_o seduce_a doctrine_n and_o observe_v who_o be_v they_o as_o he_o go_v on_o that_o be_v easy_a seduce_v by_o false_a teacher_n who_o be_v they_o that_o have_v embrace_v their_o erroneous_a tenet_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o be_v such_o who_o be_v never_o well_o catechize_v nor_o ground_v in_o the_o principle_n of_o religion_n as_o therefore_o you_o will_v not_o be_v poison_v with_o the_o erroneous_a doctrine_n of_o false_a teacher_n take_v care_n to_o be_v well_o root_v and_o ground_v by_o catechise_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n last_o necessary_a last_o catechise_v be_v exceed_o necessary_a catechise_v be_v exceed_v useful_a to_o preserve_v youth_n from_o fall_v into_o any_o gross_a and_o waste_a sin_n and_o especial_o any_o ungodly_a course_n of_o live_v or_o if_o he_o have_v be_v seduce_v by_o evil_a company_n the_o have_v the_o seed_n of_o good_a principle_n sow_o in_o the_o heart_n by_o a_o timely_a catechise_v will_v be_v the_o most_o likely_a mean_n to_o recover_v such_o a_o one_o out_o of_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n first_o live_v i._o to_o preserve_v youth_n from_o ever_o fall_v into_o a_o ungodly_a way_n of_o live_v it_o be_v exceed_o useful_a to_o preserve_v youth_n from_o fall_v into_o any_o gross_a and_o waste_a sin_n and_o especial_o any_o ungodly_a course_n of_o live_v this_o be_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o wise_a of_o mere_a man_n of_o solomon_n to_o train_v up_o a_o child_n in_o the_o way_n he_o shall_v go_v and_o when_o he_o be_v old_a he_o will_v not_o depart_v from_o it_o prov._n 22.6_o and_o that_o excellent_a moralist_n plutarch_n in_o his_o rare_a tract_n of_o breed_n of_o youth_n speak_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n that_o as_o soft_a wax_n be_v apt_a to_o take_v the_o stamp_n of_o the_o seal_n so_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o child_n to_o receive_v in_o instruction_n imprint_v on_o they_o at_o that_o age._n let_v but_o your_o youth_n be_v teach_v so_o much_o as_o they_o be_v capable_a to_o learn_v concern_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n how_o that_o he_o be_v wonderful_o good_a to_o those_o that_o love_n and_o fear_v he_o and_o that_o he_o will_v be_v terrible_a in_o judgement_n towards_o those_o that_o disobey_v he_o let_v they_o be_v instruct_v how_o wonderful_o kind_a the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v to_o they_o as_o to_o come_v down_o himself_o from_o heaven_n to_o call_v they_o forth_o out_o of_o the_o wicked_a world_n whole_o give_v up_o to_o the_o service_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o serve_v their_o god_n and_o maker_n let_v they_o be_v teach_v betimes_o as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v capable_a to_o understand_v of_o this_o and_o of_o their_o duty_n to_o god_n and_o man_n and_o what_o a_o solemn_a vow_n promise_v and_o profession_n they_o have_v make_v in_o their_o baptism_n not_o willing_o to_o offend_v so_o good_a and_o gracious_a a_o saviour_n but_o to_o serve_v and_o honour_v he_o for_o ever_o let_v but_o these_o notion_n take_v the_o first_o possession_n of_o your_o mind_n and_o it_o will_v be_v hardly_o possible_a for_o any_o temptation_n to_o prevail_v over_o you_o and_o to_o draw_v you_o into_o sin_n you_o will_v then_o blush_v to_o hear_v the_o lewd_a and_o foolish_a talk_n of_o the_o godless_a crew_n of_o harden_a sinner_n you_o will_v then_o tremble_v at_o their_o bold_a oath_n and_o you_o will_v be_v out_o of_o countenance_n to_o be_v so_o much_o as_o see_v in_o the_o company_n of_o drunkard_n if_o they_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o persuade_v you_o to_o join_v with_o they_o in_o their_o lewd_a course_n you_o will_v have_v that_o within_o you_o will_v quick_o answer_v i_o can_v i_o dare_v not_o do_v so_o ill_a a_o thing_n i_o can_v be_v guilty_a of_o so_o great_a a_o piece_n of_o ingratitude_n as_o to_o offend_v so_o good_a a_o god_n and_o gracious_a a_o saviour_n as_o i_o i_o dare_v not_o be_v guilty_a of_o so_o high_a a_o injustice_n as_o to_o violate_v my_o covenant_n vow_n and_o promise_v to_o he_o for_o than_o he_o will_v eternal_o punish_v i_o away_o all_o you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n for_o i_o will_v keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o my_o god_n but_o youth_n untaught_a and_o unnurtured_a quick_o fly_v out_o into_o all_o manner_n of_o extravagance_n for_o why_o they_o know_v no_o better_o they_o have_v receive_v no_o good_a principle_n that_o shall_v control_v they_o vanity_n youthful_a lust_n and_o their_o wicked_a companion_n hurry_v they_o into_o such_o bold_a villainy_n as_o make_v we_o admire_v the_o patience_n of_o god_n that_o forbear_v strike_v they_o quick_a into_o hell_n but_o on_o they_o go_v to_o provoke_v he_o to_o the_o utmost_a and_o how_o shall_v it_o be_v otherwise_o since_o they_o have_v no_o notion_n of_o the_o difference_n between_o good_a and_o evil_a nor_o any_o principle_n within_o they_o that_o shall_v in_o the_o least_o check_v they_o in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o that_o which_o be_v evil_a and_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o that_o which_o be_v good_n true_a it_o be_v it_o may_v too_o often_o happen_v that_o one_o that_o have_v lay_v up_o in_o store_n a_o good_a foundation_n of_o religious_a principle_n may_v be_v tempt_v and_o much_o stagger_v in_o his_o constancy_n and_o perhaps_o be_v overtake_v in_o a_o fault_n so_o as_o wilful_o to_o do_v
sacrament_n both_o by_o instruct_v you_o in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o in_o the_o sacrament_n we_o seal_v and_o in_o the_o mean_v of_o the_o sacrament_n itself_o that_o it_o be_v the_o rite_n of_o seal_v it_o three_o i_o have_v now_o show_v you_o that_o catechise_v be_v very_o useful_a to_o render_v you_o understand_a hearer_n of_o the_o word_n when_o it_o be_v preach_v so_o as_o you_o may_v receive_v edification_n by_o it_o and_o may_v be_v profit_v by_o sermon_n four_o that_o it_o be_v requisite_a to_o secure_v you_o from_o be_v at_o any_o time_n mislead_v into_o dangerous_a heresy_n and_o error_n by_o the_o sermon_n and_o discourse_n of_o man_n crafty_a to_o deceive_v to_o the_o peril_n of_o your_o immortal_a soul_n and_o last_o i_o have_v now_o large_o show_v you_o that_o it_o be_v exceed_o useful_a to_o preserve_v you_o from_o fall_v into_o any_o gross_a and_o waste_a sin_n and_o especial_o any_o ungodly_a course_n of_o live_v or_o if_o any_o of_o you_o shall_v hereafter_o be_v seduce_v which_o god_n forbid_v by_o evil_a company_n that_o the_o have_v the_o seed_n of_o good_a principle_n sow_o in_o the_o heart_n by_o a_o timely_a catechise_v will_v be_v the_o most_o likely_a mean_n to_o recover_v you_o out_o of_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o three_o lecture_n what_o be_v your_o name_n and_o the_o answer_n be_v make_v by_o the_o christian_a name_n in_o two_o discourse_n on_o the_o title_n of_o your_o catechism_n have_v give_v you_o to_o understand_v what_o a_o catechism_n mean_n and_o show_v you_o also_o the_o end_n and_o use_v of_o catechise_v i_o shall_v now_o proceed_v by_o god_n assistance_n to_o explain_v the_o catechism_n itself_o and_o to_o give_v you_o the_o mean_v of_o its_o several_a part_n and_o the_o first_o thing_n that_o offer_v itself_o to_o our_o consideration_n be_v the_o first_o question_n in_o your_o catechism_n viz_o what_o be_v your_o name_n and_o the_o answer_v you_o be_v teach_v to_o make_v to_o it_o which_o be_v your_o christian_a name_n now_o this_o question_n be_v not_o so_o idle_a and_o insignificant_a as_o some_o may_v imagine_v but_o be_v ask_v upon_o very_o good_a reason_n insomuch_o that_o i_o do_v think_v they_o may_v give_v i_o a_o very_a fair_a occasion_n to_o discourse_v to_o you_o upon_o these_o three_o head_n first_o to_o show_v you_o that_o the_o reason_n wherefore_o your_o catechism_n begin_v with_o ask_v you_o what_o be_v your_o christian_a name_n be_v to_o put_v you_o in_o mind_n of_o your_o christian_a profession_n and_o of_o that_o strictness_n of_o life_n that_o be_v answerable_a thereunto_o second_o they_o do_v give_v i_o occasion_n to_o re-mind_n you_o that_o the_o bad_a life_n of_o such_o who_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n do_v a_o infinite_a prejudice_n and_o dis-honour_n to_o christianity_n and_o three_o to_o exhort_v you_o therefore_o to_o stand_v upon_o the_o dignity_n of_o your_o christian_a name_n and_o profession_n by_o live_v such_o good_a life_n as_o may_v be_v a_o honour_n not_o a_o disgrace_n unto_o it_o and_o these_o three_o head_n of_o discourse_n as_o they_o do_v natural_o arise_v from_o this_o question_n and_o answer_v about_o your_o christian_a name_n so_o i_o know_v not_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v more_o proper_o and_o seasonable_o discourse_v upon_o in_o the_o entrance_n upon_o your_o catechism_n as_o tend_v to_o warn_v you_o beforehand_o to_o apply_v every_o thing_n you_o shall_v hereafter_o hear_v either_o in_o the_o catechism_n itself_o or_o in_o the_o explication_n thereof_o to_o the_o better_v of_o your_o life_n and_o practice_n to_o begin_v then_o first_o i_o be_o to_o show_v you_o that_o the_o reason_n wherefore_o your_o catechism_n begin_v with_o ask_v you_o what_o be_v your_o christian_a name_n be_v to_o put_v you_o in_o mind_n of_o your_o christian_a profession_n and_o of_o that_o strictness_n of_o life_n that_o be_v answerable_a thereunto_o it_o be_v think_v sufficient_a to_o justify_v this_o question_n and_o answer_v about_o your_o christian_a name_n though_o there_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n imply_v in_o its_o meaning_n that_o it_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o a_o dialogue_n it_o be_v the_o usual_a manner_n of_o dialogue_n or_o mutual_a discourse_n manage_v between_o several_a person_n be_v the_o subject_a of_o they_o never_o so_o grave_a and_o serious_a not_o to_o fall_v immediate_o point-blank_a upon_o the_o main_a matter_n intend_v but_o in_o such_o they_o usual_o usher_v in_o the_o more_o material_a point_n by_o such_o familiar_a question_n as_o this_o but_o not_o to_o insist_v on_o this_o and_o many_o other_o good_a reason_n that_o may_v be_v give_v though_o there_o be_v great_a familiarity_n and_o condescension_n in_o the_o question_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o without_o good_a reason_n and_o consideration_n that_o in_o the_o entrance_n of_o this_o instruction_n in_o your_o christian_a religion_n you_o shall_v be_v first_o ask_v your_o christian_a name_n profession_n the_o reason_n wherefore_o the_o catechism_n begin_v with_o ask_v the_o catechumen_n his_o christian_a name_n be_v to_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o his_o christian_a profession_n and_o the_o great_a reason_n be_v that_o at_o the_o mention_n thereof_o you_o may_v be_v prompt_v to_o call_v to_o mind_n what_o religion_n and_o profession_n you_o be_v of_o you_o have_v your_o christian_a name_n give_v you_o at_o the_o same_o time_n you_o take_v upon_o you_o the_o christian_a profession_n you_o be_v therefore_o in_o the_o first_o entrance_n of_o your_o catechism_n which_o be_v a_o instruction_n of_o you_o in_o this_o your_o christian_a profession_n ask_v what_o be_v your_o christian_a name_n that_o you_o may_v call_v to_o mind_n that_o most_o excellent_a religion_n you_o receive_v together_o with_o it_o and_o under_o that_o name_n solemn_o promise_v and_o vow_v to_o maintain_v and_o cleave_v unto_o your_o surname_n you_o have_v derive_v down_o unto_o you_o from_o your_o ancestor_n and_o you_o receive_v it_o from_o your_o natural_a parent_n but_o your_o christian_a name_n you_o receive_v immediate_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o your_o spiritual_a parent_n your_o minister_n and_o your_o godfather_n who_o as_o your_o proxy_n do_v at_o they_o same_o time_n they_o give_v you_o a_o christian_a name_n undertake_v for_o you_o that_o you_o shall_v live_v a_o christian_a life_n holy_a and_o unblamable_a as_o become_v those_o who_o bear_v so_o glorious_a a_o title_n you_o must_v therefore_o consider_v what_o your_o name_n be_v and_o the_o importance_n of_o it_o that_o it_o be_v christian_a and_o you_o must_v take_v care_n that_o you_o live_v not_o so_o as_o to_o bring_v a_o scandal_n upon_o that_o name_n in_o any_o sin_n and_o wickedness_n but_o so_o as_o become_v those_o who_o profess_v christianity_n and_o wear_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n all_o the_o day_n of_o your_o life_n and_o as_o he_o who_o have_v call_v you_o be_v holy_a so_o be_v you_o holy_a in_o all_o manner_n of_o conversation_n himself_o the_o force_n there_o be_v in_o a_o christian_a name_n to_o make_v a_o man_n lead_v a_o christian_a life_n as_o under_o that_o name_n have_v list_a himself_o and_o there_o be_v indeed_o the_o great_a force_n in_o our_o very_a christian_a name_n to_o render_v we_o conformable_a to_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o whereby_o we_o may_v be_v persuade_v to_o live_v christian-like_a otherwise_o the_o apostle_n will_v not_o have_v lay_v so_o much_o stress_n upon_o our_o very_a name_n and_o profession_n of_o christian_n as_o he_o do_v to_o persuade_v we_o from_o that_o very_a reason_n to_o live_v holy_a and_o christian_a life_n let_v every_o one_o that_o name_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n or_o upon_o who_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v depart_v from_o iniquity_n 2_o tim._n 2.19_o for_o why_o it_o be_v ever_o expect_v that_o those_o that_o profess_v to_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o perfect_a doctrine_n shall_v answerable_o live_v the_o most_o perfect_a life_n the_o heathen_n do_v therefore_o expect_v religion_n i._o a_o disciple_n of_o a_o most_o holy_a and_o excellent_a religion_n that_o their_o philosopher_n who_o give_v the_o high_a principle_n and_o rule_n of_o morality_n shall_v themselves_o exceed_v all_o other_o in_o a_o virtuous_a and_o orderly_a course_n of_o life_n and_o when_o they_o find_v any_o of_o their_o philosopher_n a_o trip_v and_o live_v at_o the_o rate_n of_o other_o man_n of_o loose_a principle_n how_o severe_o therefore_o will_v they_o reflect_v upon_o they_o for_o it_o now_o we_o christian_n profess_v ourselves_o the_o disciple_n of_o a_o philosophy_n that_o do_v infinite_o exceed_v all_o other_o in_o the_o powerfulness_n of_o its_o principle_n and_o doctrine_n and_o in_o the_o holiness_n and_o strictness_n of_o its_o command_n we_o have_v give_v up_o our_o name_n god_n ii_o a_o servant_n of_o a_o most_o holy_a and_o
just_a god_n and_o list_a ourselves_o to_o be_v the_o soldier_n and_o servant_n not_o of_o a_o lewd_a jupiter_n a_o wanton_a venus_n a_o fiery_a mars_n a_o revengeful_a juno_n a_o drunken_a bacchus_n and_o a_o thievish_a mercury_n such_o be_v the_o heathen_a god_n and_o no_o wonder_n then_o that_o they_o who_o do_v worship_v they_o shall_v also_o imitate_v they_o but_o we_o have_v give_v up_o our_o name_n and_o list_a ourselves_o the_o servant_n of_o a_o god_n that_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o wickedness_n neither_o shall_v any_o evil_a dwell_v with_o he_o in_o who_o sight_n the_o foolish_a shall_v not_o stand_v and_o who_o hate_v all_o the_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n who_o will_v destroy_v all_o man_n that_o speak_v lease_v that_o be_v crafty_a to_o cheat_v and_o deceive_v and_o will_v abhor_v the_o bloodthirsty_a and_o deceitful_a man_n psal_n 5.4_o 5_o 6._o nay_o who_o will_v rain_v upon_o the_o wicked_a snare_n fire_n and_o brimstone_n and_o a_o horrible_a tempest_n this_o shall_v be_v the_o portion_n of_o their_o cup_n for_o the_o righteous_a lord_n love_v righteousness_n his_o countenance_n do_v behold_v the_o upright_o psal_n 11.6_o 7._o devil_n iii_o to_o fight_v against_o the_o world_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o devil_n such_o be_v the_o god_n to_o who_o we_o have_v give_v up_o our_o name_n to_o serve_v and_o we_o have_v list_a ourselves_o in_o our_o baptism_n under_o our_o several_a christian_a name_n to_o fight_v under_o his_o banner_n against_o the_o world_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o devil_n so_o as_o not_o to_o be_v tempt_v or_o draw_v off_o to_o commit_v any_o injustice_n or_o unmercifulness_n any_o intemperance_n or_o filthiness_n any_o act_n of_o ungodliness_n or_o profaneness_n in_o a_o word_n ungodliness_n iv_o asunder_o that_o name_n he_o profess_v to_o believe_v such_o article_n as_o be_v the_o most_o powerful_a motive_n to_o deny_v all_o ungodliness_n any_o sin_n against_o he_o we_o have_v engage_v ourselves_o under_o our_o several_a name_n in_o the_o strong_a covenant_n in_o hope_n of_o the_o most_o glorious_a reward_n and_o out_o fear_v of_o the_o sore_a punishment_n to_o be_v faithful_a in_o our_o obedience_n to_o he_o we_o have_v open_o profess_v under_o our_o respective_a christian_a name_n firm_o to_o believe_v such_o a_o set_a of_o article_n those_o of_o our_o christian_a faith_n as_o be_v every_o one_o of_o they_o as_o shall_v hereafter_o be_v make_v appear_v the_o most_o powerful_a motive_n in_o the_o world_n to_o make_v we_o deny_v all_o ungodliness_n and_o worldly_a lust_n and_o to_o live_v sober_o righteous_o and_o godly_a in_o this_o present_a evil_a world_n and_o under_o the_o same_o christian_a name_n we_o have_v all_o of_o we_o profess_v law_n v._o to_o obey_v the_o most_o righteous_a law_n to_o be_v govern_v by_o such_o law_n and_o command_n of_o virtue_n and_o goodness_n of_o piety_n towards_o god_n of_o righteousness_n to_o our_o neighbour_n and_o which_o lie_v down_o such_o incomparable_a rule_n concern_v the_o government_n of_o ourselves_o as_o the_o like_a be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o other_o philosophy_n and_o last_o this_o last_o as_o have_v under_o that_o name_n receive_v promise_n of_o most_o powerful_a assistance_n to_o do_v all_o this_o we_o profess_v to_o have_v such_o assistance_n derive_v to_o we_o from_o god_n by_o prayer_n and_o sacrament_n those_o mean_n of_o his_o own_o appointment_n to_o convey_v down_o his_o aid_n and_o assistance_n to_o we_o to_o enable_n we_o to_o do_v these_o thing_n as_o will_v make_v it_o not_o extreme_o difficult_a to_o we_o to_o live_v very_o excellent_a and_o good_a life_n thus_o have_v we_o christian_n under_o our_o several_a christian_a name_n as_o under_o hand_n and_o seal_n profess_v ourselves_o the_o disciple_n of_o a_o religion_n that_o do_v infinite_o exceed_v all_o other_o in_o the_o powerfulness_n of_o its_o principle_n and_o doctrine_n and_o the_o holiness_n and_o strictness_n of_o its_o precept_n and_o rule_n of_o a_o religion_n that_o can_v work_v if_o its_o dictate_v be_v follow_v the_o great_a miracle_n in_o the_o change_a man_n nature_n and_o temper_n from_o worse_a to_o better_o that_o can_v turn_v a_o ravenous_a wolf_n into_o a_o harmless_a lamb_n a_o furious_a lion_n into_o a_o tender_a kid_n that_o be_v the_o most_o savage_a and_o violent_a disposition_n of_o cruelty_n and_o pride_n into_o perfect_a charity_n and_o meekness_n and_o now_o if_o we_o christian_n shall_v be_v find_v as_o debauch_v and_o evil_a liver_n as_o unconvert_v heathen_n as_o lewd_a as_o turk_n as_o gripe_a as_o jew_n as_o impious_a and_o profane_a as_o atheist_n how_o severe_o and_o that_o deserve_o will_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o infidel_n world_n upbraid_v we_o what_o dishonour_n shall_v we_o thereby_o do_v to_o the_o true_a god_n and_o our_o most_o holy_a religion_n which_o bring_v i_o to_o the_o second_o thing_n propose_v which_o be_v to_o remind_n you_o that_o the_o bad_a life_n of_o those_o who_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n do_v a_o infinite_a prejudice_n and_o dishonour_n to_o christianity_n christianity_n the_o bad_a life_n of_o nominal_a christian_n do_v a_o infinite_a prejudice_n &_o dishonour_n to_o christianity_n and_o alas_o what_o bitter_a reproach_n have_v the_o unchristian_a life_n of_o christian_a professor_n put_v into_o the_o mouth_n of_o our_o enemy_n make_v they_o to_o say_v that_o if_o we_o christian_n do_v but_o believe_v ourselves_o those_o promise_n in_o scripture_n of_o such_o mighty_a reward_n to_o holy_a honest_a and_o good_a live_n we_o shall_v sure_a ourselves_o live_v better_a life_n and_o when_o any_o of_o our_o christian_n will_v persuade_v they_o to_o forsake_v their_o own_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n and_o to_o embrace_v our_o most_o holy_a religion_n our_o unanswerable_a life_n have_v provoke_v they_o to_o return_v smart_o enough_o upon_o we_o will_v you_o have_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o your_o religion_n which_o you_o do_v not_o seem_v to_o believe_v yourselves_o infidel_n it_o hinder_v the_o conversion_n of_o infidel_n and_o alas_o this_o be_v the_o main_a thing_n the_o very_a unsuitable_a life_n of_o we_o christian_n that_o so_o prejudices_fw-la the_o infidel_n part_v of_o the_o world_n pagan_n turk_n and_o jew_n against_o our_o most_o holy_a religion_n and_o hinder_v their_o conversion_n it_o be_v the_o cruelty_n and_o covetousness_n of_o our_o christian_a merchant_n in_o the_o indies_n that_o make_v the_o poor_a indian_n even_o abhor_v our_o religion_n and_o scornful_o to_o say_v that_o gold_n not_o jehovah_n be_v our_o god_n thus_o be_v the_o name_n of_o god_n blaspheme_v among_o the_o gentile_n through_o we_o rom._n 2.24_o it_o be_v the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o make_v turk_n and_o jew_n both_o of_o they_o mortal_a hater_n of_o idol_n to_o loath_a and_o despise_v the_o christian_a worship_n religion_n it_o put_v bitter_a reproach_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o atheist_n especial_o when_o wickedness_n be_v commit_v under_o the_o disguise_n of_o religion_n but_o not_o to_o travel_v so_o far_o as_o the_o indies_n or_o turkey_n to_o find_v out_o how_o much_o our_o live_n so_o unbecoming_a our_o most_o holy_a profession_n have_v scandalize_v person_n so_o as_o to_o abhor_v it_o observe_v the_o man_n of_o no_o religion_n among_o ourselves_o our_o atheist_n and_o libertine_n and_o what_o bitter_a scoff_v and_o jeer_n may_v we_o daily_o hear_v they_o cast_v forth_o upon_o religion_n itself_o when_o they_o see_v some_o that_o make_v great_a outward_a profession_n there_o guilty_a of_o so_o much_o hypocrisy_n cheat_v cruelty_n and_o rebellion_n make_v their_o very_a religion_n a_o cloak_n for_o the_o carry_v on_o the_o most_o wicked_a thing_n as_o if_o the_o least_o religious_a the_o most_o honest_a man._n and_o now_o if_o there_o be_v but_o the_o least_o spark_n of_o love_n and_o honour_n in_o our_o heart_n for_o god_n and_o our_o most_o holy_a religion_n this_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v we_o careful_a to_o lead_v innocent_a and_o inoffensive_a life_n if_o it_o be_v only_o that_o we_o may_v not_o dishonour_v god_n and_o religion_n thereby_o and_o may_v not_o bring_v a_o reproach_n upon_o our_o christian_a name_n every_o man_n that_o desire_v the_o honour_n and_o reputation_n of_o his_o call_v and_o profession_n whatever_o it_o be_v will_v live_v answerable_a to_o his_o character_n and_o not_o so_o as_o to_o be_v a_o scandal_n to_o his_o place_n reproach_v few_o man_n will_v endure_v their_o worldly_a call_v to_o be_v put_v at_o naught_o be_v reproach_v and_o therefore_o as_o we_o seldom_o see_v a_o person_n of_o so_o abject_a and_o mean_a a_o spirit_n as_o to_o endure_v with_o patience_n whatever_o art_n or_o profession_n he_o be_v of_o to_o be_v set_v at_o naught_o and_o speak_v against_o so_o man_n be_v general_o with_o respect_n to_o the_o credit_n of_o their_o worldly_a profession_n careful_a to_o
it_o may_v give_v light_a to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o house_n ver_fw-la 15._o and_o therefore_o let_v your_o light_n so_o shine_v before_o man_n that_o other_o may_v see_v your_o good_a work_n and_o glorify_v your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n be_v the_o inference_n the_o command_n of_o christ_n the_o great_a captain_n of_o our_o salvation_n ver_fw-la 16._o and_o moreover_o sixthly_a every_o christian_n have_v common_o that_o in_o his_o particular_a name_n 〈…〉_o ●i_fw-la 〈◊〉_d chri●●_n 〈◊〉_d james_n 〈◊〉_d some_o 〈…〉_o of_o 〈…〉_o which_o 〈…〉_o whereby_o he_o may_v be_v excite_v to_o some_o noble_a strain_n of_o virtue_n it_o seldom_o happen_v that_o any_o one_o have_v a_o name_n give_v he_o of_o which_o there_o have_v not_o be_v some_o one_o before_o he_o renown_v in_o history_n either_o in_o the_o scripture_n or_o elsewhere_o for_o some_o noble_a exploit_n of_o virtue_n or_o other_o and_o now_o my_o young_a disciple_n search_v the_o scripture_n and_o other_o history_n who_o or_o what_o he_o or_o she_o be_v and_o wherein_o thy_o names-sake_n do_v excel_v in_o any_o goodness_n name_n christian_n to_o a_o imitation_n of_o those_o who_o be_v eminent_a under_o those_o name_n and_o propose_v such_o a_o one_o for_o thy_o particular_a example_n to_o who_o eminency_n in_o the_o like_a virtue_n do_v thou_o all_o thou_o can_v to_o arrive_v do_v thou_o john_n bethink_v thyself_o often_o of_o that_o great_a contempt_n of_o the_o world_n that_o one_o of_o thy_o name_n viz._n john_n the_o baptist_n do_v show_v and_o of_o that_o burn_a love_n to_o god_n and_o man_n which_o the_o other_o viz._n the_o apostle_n of_o that_o name_n do_v express_v and_o let_v the_o one_o excite_v thou_o likewise_o to_o the_o like_a contempt_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o other_o to_o the_o like_a love_n of_o god_n and_o men._n a_o peter_n shall_v do_v well_o to_o call_v to_o mind_n the_o ready_a confession_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o apostle_n of_o that_o name_n do_v make_v and_o the_o speediness_n and_o sorrowfulness_n of_o his_o repentance_n after_o he_o have_v sin_v and_o let_v the_o thought_n of_o he_o make_v thou_o ready_a to_o give_v testimony_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o put_v thou_o upon_o a_o speedy_a repentance_n after_o every_o fall_n and_o backslide_v into_o sin_n let_v every_o anne_n call_v to_o mind_n that_o widow_n of_o her_o name_n mention_v luk._n 2.37_o who_o though_o a_o widow_n of_o fourscore_o year_n and_o four_o depart_v not_o from_o the_o temple_n but_o serve_v god_n with_o fast_v and_o prayer_n night_n and_o day_n and_o let_v the_o example_n of_o this_o devout_a and_o happy_a woman_n of_o thy_o name_n call_v thou_o anne_n to_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o prayer_n sacrament_n and_o sermon_n let_v every_o mary_n bethink_v herself_n of_o those_o mary_n famous_a in_o the_o gospel_n the_o one_o for_o her_o chaste_a virginity_n the_o other_o for_o sit_v so_o attentive_a at_o jesus_n foot_n to_o who_o the_o lord_n give_v this_o honourable_a testimony_n that_o she_o have_v choose_v the_o better_a part_n and_o prefer_v she_o before_o her_o sister_n martha_n who_o disturb_v herself_n too_o much_o with_o worldly_a business_n luk._n 10.40_o 41._o and_o from_o her_o example_n learn_v not_o to_o entangle_v thyself_o too_o much_o with_o the_o care_n of_o this_o life_n but_o chief_o to_o take_v care_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o to_o apply_v thyself_o to_o hear_v and_o devotion_n last_o let_v i_o give_v it_o in_o charge_n to_o you_o that_o be_v parent_n vice_n and_o therefore_o parent_n be_v advise_v to_o choose_v for_o their_o child_n the_o name_n of_o person_n eminent_a for_o virtue_n not_o infamous_a for_o vice_n not_o to_o give_v to_o your_o child_n any_o other_o name_n but_o what_o be_v of_o note_n for_o their_o eminent_a and_o good_a example_n that_o they_o may_v have_v always_o before_o their_o eye_n who_o they_o may_v imitate_v in_o their_o virtue_n give_v they_o such_o name_n as_o if_o not_o signalise_v in_o scripture_n be_v at_o least_o in_o other_o history_n for_o some_o good_a they_o have_v do_v or_o if_o you_o give_v they_o the_o name_n of_o any_o of_o your_o ancestor_n let_v it_o be_v of_o those_o who_o virtue_n have_v adorn_v not_o who_o vice_n have_v disgracee_v the_o age_n they_o live_v in_o or_o of_o such_o who_o have_v leave_v behind_o they_o a_o good_a name_n to_o be_v imitate_v nothing_o ill_a to_o be_v abominate_v by_o their_o posterity_n for_o those_o only_o be_v worthy_a to_o have_v their_o memory_n continue_v in_o the_o name_n of_o their_o posterity_n but_o these_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v eternal_o forget_v and_o thus_o my_o christian_a disciple_n have_v show_v you_o the_o great_a the_o very_a great_a obligation_n lie_v upon_o you_o even_o from_o your_o christian_a name_n to_o square_v your_o life_n according_a to_o the_o christian_a rule_n those_o rule_n that_o you_o have_v teach_v you_o and_o shall_v hereafter_o with_o god_n assistance_n be_v explain_v to_o you_o in_o the_o exposition_n i_o shall_v give_v you_o of_o your_o catechism_n and_o from_o several_a consideration_n have_v therefore_o urge_v you_o to_o live_v with_o all_o the_o care_n you_o can_v according_a to_o that_o most_o holy_a religion_n to_o which_o in_o your_o baptism_n you_o have_v give_v up_o your_o name_n and_o under_o your_o several_a name_n have_v list_a yourselves_o to_o maintain_v and_o cleave_v unto_o what_o then_o remain_v my_o christian_a disciple_n but_o that_o you_o apply_v yourselves_o with_o the_o great_a diligence_n in_o order_n to_o your_o live_a good_a life_n to_o understand_v thorough_o that_o religion_n to_o which_o you_o have_v give_v up_o your_o name_n there_o shall_v be_v nothing_o want_v i_o do_v assure_v you_o on_o my_o part_n for_o i_o design_n by_o god_n assistance_n to_o instruct_v you_o in_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o which_o be_v each_o of_o they_o contain_v in_o your_o church-catechism_n it_o lie_v on_o your_o part_n to_o be_v teachable_a disciple_n constant_o to_o repair_v here_o to_o be_v catechize_v and_o instruct_v by_o i_o to_o have_v attentive_a ear_n open_a heart_n and_o faithful_a memory_n and_o oh_o that_o i_o may_v always_o find_v you_o such_o what_o satisfaction_n will_v then_o accrue_v to_o myself_o what_o profit_n to_o you_o and_o how_o great_a and_o eternal_a reward_n to_o we_o both_o and_o that_o it_o may_v thus_o succeed_v with_o all_o of_o we_o pray_v let_v it_o be_v our_o constant_a and_o fervent_a desire_n to_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n amen_o the_o four_o lecture_n quest_n who_o give_v you_o that_o name_n answ_n my_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n in_o my_o baptism_n wherein_o i_o be_v make_v a_o member_n of_o christ_n a_o child_n of_o god_n and_o a_o inheritor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n quest_n what_o do_v your_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n then_o for_o you_o answ_n they_o do_v promise_n and_o vow_v three_o thing_n in_o my_o name_n first_o that_o i_o shall_v renounce_v the_o devil_n andall_a his_o work_n the_o pomp_n and_o vanity_n of_o this_o wicked_a world_n and_o all_o the_o sinful_a lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n second_o that_o i_o shall_v believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o three_o that_o i_o shall_v keep_v god_n holy_a will_n and_o commandment_n and_o walk_v in_o the_o same_o all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n quest_n do_v thou_o not_o think_v that_o thou_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v and_o to_o do_v as_o they_o have_v promise_v for_o thou_o answ_n yes_o very_o and_o by_o god_n help_n so_o i_o will_n and_o i_o hearty_o thank_v our_o heavenly_a father_n that_o he_o have_v call_v i_o to_o this_o state_n of_o salvation_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n and_o i_o pray_v unto_o god_n to_o give_v i_o his_o grace_n that_o i_o may_v continue_v in_o the_o same_o unto_o my_o life_n end_v as_o the_o compiler_n of_o the_o catechism_n do_v very_o wise_o begin_v with_o a_o question_n and_o answer_v about_o your_o christian_a name_n to_o the_o end_n that_o at_o the_o mention_n thereof_o you_o may_v take_v occasion_n to_o consider_v the_o great_a obligation_n which_o lie_v upon_o you_o to_o live_v according_a to_o that_o most_o holy_a religion_n which_o under_o that_o name_n you_o have_v receive_v so_o in_o comment_v upon_o that_o question_n and_o answer_v about_o your_o christian_a name_n i_o have_v give_v you_o myself_o some_o preparatory_a admonition_n according_o to_o make_v that_o good_a use_n of_o those_o instruction_n shall_v be_v give_v you_o from_o your_o catechism_n as_o to_o live_v suitable_o to_o they_o and_o be_v thus_o well_o prepare_v i_o hope_v to_o receive_v benefit_n from_o what_o shall_v hereafter_o be_v deliver_v what_o remain_v but_o that_o i_o proceed_v to_o instruct_v you_o
body_n be_v so_o far_o bind_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o such_o a_o excommunication_n as_o to_o disow_v and_o discard_v such_o a_o person_n and_o to_o have_v no_o society_n with_o he_o so_o 1_o corinthian_n 5.11_o if_o any_o man_n that_o be_v call_v a_o brother_n be_v a_o fornicator_n or_o covetous_a or_o a_o idolater_n or_o a_o railer_n or_o a_o drunkard_n or_o a_o extortioner_n with_o such_o a_o one_o after_o excommunication_n they_o be_v not_o to_o eat_v in_o such_o case_n as_o these_o indeed_o a_o evil_a member_n become_v no_o member_n and_o be_v to_o be_v to_o the_o rest_n as_o a_o heathen_a man_n and_o a_o publican_n that_o be_v one_o that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n matth._n 18.17_o and_o so_o likewise_o be_v he_o who_o cut_v himself_o off_o from_o that_o mystical_a body_n the_o church_n by_o a_o causeless_a schism_n and_o separation_n from_o any_o of_o its_o sound_a part_n part_n or_o till_o he_o cut_v himself_o off_o by_o a_o causeless_a schism_n and_o separation_n from_o any_o of_o its_o sound_a part_n i_o say_v any_o of_o its_o sound_a part_n for_o wherever_o there_o be_v a_o true_a church_n if_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o its_o doctrine_n nor_o worship_n that_o be_v sinful_a every_o person_n be_v bind_v to_o continue_v steadfast_o in_o the_o doctrine_n prayer_n and_o sacrament_n and_o fellowship_n of_o that_o church_n as_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n they_o do_v act._n 2.42_o and_o to_o reject_v the_o communion_n of_o all_o other_o party_n and_o sect_n of_o christian_n or_o otherwise_o he_o will_v cut_v off_o himself_o from_o the_o church_n and_o will_v cease_v to_o be_v a_o real_a member_n of_o it_o as_o the_o finger_n cease_v to_o be_v of_o the_o body_n when_o it_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o arm._n thus_o in_o either_o of_o these_o case_n indeed_o shall_v a_o person_n discontinue_v to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n when_o either_o he_o be_v cut_v off_o by_o the_o just_a sentence_n of_o those_o governor_n in_o the_o church_n who_o have_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n to_o receive_v in_o or_o shut_v out_o or_o when_o he_o cut_v himself_o off_o by_o a_o causeless_a separation_n and_o schism_n from_o any_o of_o its_o sound_a part_n but_o otherwise_o all_o person_n who_o have_v enter_v into_o covenant_n with_o god_n and_o have_v be_v admit_v into_o it_o by_o baptism_n be_v member_n of_o christ_n church_n as_o have_v be_v already_o sufficient_o prove_v and_o need_v not_o again_o be_v repeat_v and_o so_o shall_v partake_v of_o those_o exceed_a great_a privilege_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o member_n of_o it_o which_o what_o and_o how_o great_a they_o be_v i_o come_v next_o to_o declare_v unto_o you_o the_o six_o lecture_n wherein_o i_o be_v make_v a_o member_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o have_v be_v show_v be_v mean_v a_o visible_a society_n of_o man_n call_v forth_o of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o knowledge_n belief_n and_o service_n of_o the_o one_o true_a god_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o profess_v the_o same_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o service_n of_o satan_n and_o all_o false_a god_n whatsoever_o and_o also_o to_o all_o those_o vicious_a and_o immoral_a practice_n which_o do_v so_o notorious_o accompany_v the_o pagan_a worship_n and_o indeed_o profess_v a_o utter_a hatred_n to_o all_o sin_n of_o any_o kind_n and_o it_o be_v a_o society_n as_o have_v be_v show_v you_o combine_v into_o one_o covenant_n with_o god_n by_o outward_a sacrament_n and_o hold_v communion_n with_o each_o other_o under_o jesus_n christ_n its_o head_n and_o a_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n you_o have_v also_o see_v be_v every_o one_o who_o have_v be_v enter_v into_o this_o visible_a society_n of_o holy_a man_n and_o into_o this_o covenant_n with_o god_n by_o baptism_n and_o who_o hold_v a_o constant_a communion_n without_o swerve_v aside_o into_o separate_a assembly_n with_o that_o particular_a true_a and_o orthodox_n church_n whereof_o he_o be_v a_o member_n and_o in_o who_o verge_n he_o live_v every_o such_o person_n i_o have_v show_v you_o be_v a_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n and_o will_v continue_v such_o except_o his_o lawful_a governor_n therein_o shall_v cut_v he_o off_o by_o a_o just_a excommunication_n or_o he_o shall_v cut_v off_o himself_o by_o a_o sinful_a and_o unnecessary_a separation_n and_o now_o have_v sufficient_o make_v it_o appear_v in_o the_o former_a discourse_n to_o this_o purpose_n first_o what_o kind_n of_o body_n that_o be_v which_o be_v call_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o also_o second_o have_v show_v you_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o it_o it_o will_v be_v now_o requisite_a that_o i_o shall_v also_o demonstrate_v to_o you_o in_o order_n to_o make_v you_o sufficient_o sensible_a of_o which_o the_o two_o former_a point_n have_v be_v so_o large_o treat_v of_o three_o what_o vast_a and_o invaluable_a privilege_n do_v according_o belong_v to_o every_o member_n of_o christ_n visible_a church_n i_o say_v to_o every_o member_n of_o christ_n visible_a church_n for_o it_o be_v not_o my_o business_n here_o to_o enlarge_v on_o the_o more_o peculiar_a privilege_n of_o those_o who_o be_v style_v member_n of_o the_o invisible_a church_n who_o be_v the_o sincere_a part_n only_o of_o christ_n visible_a church_n those_o perhaps_o i_o may_v also_o declare_v in_o few_o word_n by_o the_o by._n but_o the_o privilege_n which_o i_o be_o here_o concern_v to_o treat_v upon_o and_o to_o acquaint_v you_o with_o be_v such_o as_o belong_v to_o every_o member_n of_o the_o church_n i_o have_v be_v speak_v of_o and_o these_o privilege_n church_n the_o privilege_n of_o our_o be_v member_n of_o christ_n church_n which_o do_v peculiar_o belong_v to_o all_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n as_o they_o be_v the_o member_n of_o such_o a_o body_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o head_n be_v these_o two_o first_o a_o most_o reasonable_a and_o excellent_a body_n of_o religion_n and_o law_n together_o with_o most_o profitable_a and_o edify_a institution_n and_o ordinance_n appoint_v by_o he_o our_o supreme_a head_n and_o governor_n to_o conduct_v we_o to_o heaven_n second_o a_o sufficient_a measure_n of_o divine_a grace_n and_o assistance_n derive_v down_o upon_o we_o from_o he_o our_o mystical_a head_n and_o convey_v by_o those_o his_o ordinance_n to_o enable_n we_o to_o conform_v to_o his_o religion_n and_o obey_v those_o law_n and_o the_o first_o great_a privilege_n ordinance_n i._o a_o most_o excellent_a body_n of_o religion_n law_n and_o ordinance_n which_o do_v peculiar_o belong_v to_o all_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n visible_a church_n as_o they_o be_v the_o member_n of_o such_o a_o society_n be_v a_o most_o reasonable_a and_o excellent_a body_n of_o religion_n and_o law_n together_o with_o most_o profitable_a and_o edify_a institution_n and_o ordinance_n give_v and_o appoint_v we_o by_o he_o our_o supreme_a head_n and_o governor_n to_o conduct_v we_o to_o heaven_n we_o do_v enjoy_v i_o say_v thereby_o jewish_a the_o christian_a religion_n and_o law_n far_o exceed_v the_o pagan_a mahometan_n or_o jewish_a the_o privilege_n of_o a_o most_o reasonable_a and_o excellent_a body_n of_o religion_n and_o law_n far_o exceed_v what_o any_o other_o people_n have_v ever_o enjoy_v to_o conduct_v we_o to_o heaven_n this_o be_v clear_o to_o be_v see_v heb._n 8.8_o 9_o 10_o 11._o where_o god_n himself_o find_v fault_n with_o the_o jewish_a covenant_n and_o law_n as_o what_o can_v not_o make_v the_o comer_n thereunto_o perfect_a say_v behold_v the_o day_n come_v when_o i_o will_v make_v a_o new_a covenant_n with_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n and_o with_o the_o house_n of_o judah_n not_o according_a to_o the_o covenant_n that_o i_o make_v with_o their_o father_n in_o the_o day_n when_o i_o take_v they_o by_o the_o hand_n to_o lead_v they_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n for_o this_o be_v the_o covenant_n that_o i_o will_v make_v with_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n after_o those_o day_n say_v the_o lord_n i_o will_v put_v my_o law_n into_o their_o mind_n and_o write_v they_o in_o their_o heart_n and_o i_o will_v be_v to_o they_o a_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v to_o i_o a_o people_n and_o they_o shall_v not_o teach_v every_o man_n his_o neighbour_n and_o every_o man_n his_o brother_n say_v know_v the_o lord_n for_o all_o shall_v know_v i_o from_o the_o least_o to_o the_o great_a which_o remarkable_a word_n speak_v first_o by_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n as_o a_o prophecy_n of_o the_o most_o happy_a state_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o most_o excellent_a covenant_n and_o law_n that_o will_v be_v give_v it_o beyond_o what_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o jewish_a do_v import_n that_o even_o the_o jewish_a covenant_n be_v not_o in_o itself_o
perfect_a and_o such_o as_o can_v not_o be_v better_v and_o improve_v though_o it_o have_v god_n for_o its_o author_n and_o sure_o then_o those_o superstition_n which_o derive_v themselves_o from_o no_o better_a author_n than_o the_o devil_n and_o wicked_a impostor_n must_v be_v very_o bad_a but_o that_o the_o christian_a covenant_n and_o law_n have_v such_o a_o inward_a essential_a goodness_n in_o they_o that_o a_o man_n be_v own_o reason_n will_v prompt_v he_o to_o approve_v they_o as_o best_o and_o most_o excellent_a there_o be_v none_o of_o its_o doctrine_n but_o what_o be_v high_o agreeable_a to_o the_o best_a reason_n of_o man_n and_o all_o its_o precept_n be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o law_n write_v in_o every_o man_n be_v own_o heart_n and_o indeed_o the_o christian_a religion_n whether_o we_o consider_v it_o as_o compare_v with_o the_o pagan_a or_o mahometan_a superstition_n and_o jewish_a dispensation_n or_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n it_o be_v a_o most_o singular_a institution_n and_o body_n of_o law_n and_o such_o as_o we_o ought_v to_o esteem_v it_o our_o very_a great_a happiness_n and_o advantage_n above_o other_o man_n that_o we_o be_v under_o the_o government_n of_o '_o they_o and_o first_o consider_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o pagan_a superstition_n nature_n the_o pagan_a superstition_n tend_v to_o nothing_o but_o to_o defile_v humane_a nature_n and_o what_o else_o do_v it_o tend_v to_o but_o to_o debase_v mankind_n infinite_o below_o the_o dignity_n of_o their_o nature_n and_o to_o defile_v they_o much_o more_o than_o the_o very_a brute_n the_o god_n which_o the_o pagan_n worship_n be_v at_o best_a the_o most_o vile_a and_o infamous_a of_o humane_a race_n viz._n a_o adulterous_a jupiter_n a_o revengeful_a juno_n a_o drunken_a bacchus_n a_o wanton_a venus_n a_o thievish_a mercury_n and_o a_o cruel_a mars_n not_o to_o mention_v how_o they_o bow_v themselves_o before_o and_o give_v divine_a worship_n to_o the_o most_o poor_a and_o contemptible_a woman_n the_o god_n the_o pagan_n worship_v be_v at_o best_a the_o most_o infamous_a man_n and_o woman_n senseless_a creature_n and_o when_o they_o worship_v adulterer_n and_o whore_n and_o thief_n and_o drunkard_n what_o can_v be_v expect_v but_o that_o the_o rite_n whereby_o they_o serve_v they_o shall_v be_v accompany_v with_o the_o vile_a practice_n such_o as_o be_v answerable_a to_o the_o nature_n and_o temper_n of_o such_o deity_n which_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o those_o word_n of_o st._n peter_n 1_o epist_n 4.3_o tell_v those_o who_o have_v be_v late_o convert_v from_o paganism_n to_o christianity_n that_o the_o time_n pass_v of_o their_o life_n be_v sufficient_a to_o have_v wrought_v the_o will_n of_o the_o gentile_n when_o they_o walk_v in_o lasciviousness_n lust_n excess_n of_o wine_n revel_v banquet_n and_o abominable_a idolatry_n wherein_o be_v more_o than_o intimate_v that_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o heathen_n be_v usual_o accompany_v with_o such_o villainous_a practice_n and_o indeed_o from_o the_o pagan_a author_n themselves_o we_o know_v they_o be_v so_o themselves_o many_o time_n they_o worship_v the_o very_a devil_n themselves_o but_o it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o vile_a of_o man_n and_o woman_n but_o the_o devil_n themselves_o who_o the_o pagan_n worship_v and_o who_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o serve_v not_o only_o with_o abominable_a idolatry_n accompany_v with_o most_o lewd_a practice_n which_o however_o hateful_a to_o right_a reason_n may_v be_v grateful_a to_o some_o sensual_a spirit_n but_o they_o be_v force_v to_o commit_v many_o time_n the_o great_a violence_n possible_a to_o humane_a nature_n in_o their_o worship_n to_o those_o barbarous_a and_o cruel_a devil_n they_o adore_v rite_n and_o that_o with_o lewd_a barbarous_a and_o cruel_a rite_n thus_o it_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o worshipper_n of_o baal_n to_o cut_v themselves_o with_o knife_n and_o lancer_n till_o the_o blood_n gush_v out_o upon_o they_o 1_o king_n 18.28_o nay_o the_o sacrifice_v their_o son_n and_o their_o daughter_n unto_o devil_n and_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n even_o the_o blood_n of_o their_o son_n and_o of_o their_o daughter_n who_o they_o sacrifice_v unto_o the_o idol_n of_o canaan_n psal_n 106.37_o 38._o which_o be_v a_o barbarity_n so_o horrid_a to_o humane_a nature_n that_o they_o be_v force_v to_o make_v use_n of_o loud_a instrument_n at_o the_o time_n of_o sacrifice_n to_o drown_v the_o noise_n of_o the_o shriek_a infant_n and_o at_o this_o day_n the_o idol_n vitsiputsi_n among_o the_o indian_n be_v say_v to_o have_v many_o thousand_o slay_v in_o one_o of_o his_o solemn_a procession_n it_o be_v usual_a for_o his_o worshipper_n to_o throw_v themselves_o under_o the_o wheel_n of_o his_o massy_a chariot_n on_o purpose_n to_o be_v crush_v in_o piece_n by_o the_o weight_n thereof_o go_v over_o '_o they_o such_o be_v the_o lewd_a and_o barbarous_a rite_n of_o the_o pagan_a religion_n not_o to_o mention_v any_o thing_n of_o those_o intolerable_a slavish_a fear_n which_o always_o possess_v idolatrous_a and_o superstitious_a religionist_n who_o be_v always_o in_o dread_n lest_o they_o shall_v incense_v the_o angry_a and_o peevish_a daemon_n by_o every_o little_a accident_n and_o be_v ever_o upon_o the_o rack_n study_v to_o please_v he_o by_o innumerable_a little_a insignificant_a observance_n imposture_n the_o mahometan_a religion_n be_v a_o vile_a imposture_n nor_o second_o as_o to_o the_o mahometan_a religion_n be_v there_o any_o thing_n in_o it_o worthy_a of_o god_n whereby_o we_o shall_v judge_v he_o to_o be_v its_o author_n first_o it_o be_v a_o plain_a imposture_n and_o cheat_n pretend_v to_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n to_o his_o prophet_n mahomet_n after_o the_o jewish_a and_o christian_a religion_n as_o a_o more_o perfect_a institution_n than_o either_o whereas_o indeed_o look_v into_o the_o whole_a matter_n and_o inward_a frame_n thereof_o and_o we_o shall_v find_v nothing_o in_o it_o as_o one_o observe_v but_o a_o mass_n of_o foolish_a opinion_n odd_a story_n uncouth_a ceremony_n compound_v chief_o of_o the_o dregs_o of_o christian_a heresy_n together_o with_o some_o ingredient_n of_o judaisme_n and_o paganism_n confuse_o jumble_v or_o unskilful_o mix_v one_o with_o the_o other_o but_o as_o to_o that_o great_a principle_n of_o it_o which_o promise_v in_o paradise_n a_o thousand_o year_n satisfaction_n arise_v from_o sensual_a pleasure_n and_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o woman_n to_o those_o who_o shall_v slay_v the_o unbeliever_n that_o be_v christian_n for_o so_o they_o do_v call_v we_o especial_o because_o we_o believe_v not_o in_o their_o mahomet_n this_o one_o principle_n of_o their_o religion_n i_o say_v be_v enough_o to_o debauch_v humane_a nature_n to_o the_o low_a degree_n of_o naughtiness_n by_o give_v encouragement_n to_o the_o two_o worst_a of_o sin_n lust_n and_o cruelty_n cruelty_n its_o principle_n tend_v to_o lust_n and_o cruelty_n and_o according_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o be_v that_o they_o give_v a_o unbounded_a range_v to_o their_o lust_n among_o themselves_o and_o be_v cruel_a and_o bloodthirsty_a to_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o be_v instigate_v by_o their_o very_a religion_n to_o fill_v the_o whole_a earth_n with_o war_n desolation_n and_o misery_n so_o that_o this_o be_v another_o religion_n also_o which_o tend_v instead_o of_o improve_n to_o deprave_v humane_a nature_n and_o to_o make_v it_o much_o worse_o and_o three_o as_o to_o the_o jewish_a religion_n religion_n judaisme_n be_v a_o imperfect_a and_o unfinished_a draught_n of_o religion_n though_o that_o indeed_o be_v of_o a_o divine_a original_a yet_o whether_o it_o be_v that_o the_o infancy_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o ripe_a for_o a_o more_o deep_a and_o manly_a instruction_n or_o whether_o that_o particular_a nation_n however_o to_o who_o disposition_n and_o capacity_n those_o law_n and_o constitution_n be_v suit_v be_v unfit_a for_o the_o high_a and_o hard_a lesson_n so_o it_o be_v that_o st._n paul_n call_v their_o ordinance_n poor_a and_o beggarly_a element_n gal._n 4.9.3_o and_o indeed_o as_o to_o the_o ritual_a part_n of_o their_o law_n the_o ceremony_n and_o sacrifice_n thereof_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n type_n and_o shadow_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v heb._n 10.1_o and_o as_o to_o the_o moral_a part_n moses_n for_o the_o hardness_n of_o their_o heart_n be_v force_v to_o indulge_v they_o what_o the_o perfection_n and_o purity_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n allow_v of_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o case_n of_o put_v away_o a_o wife_n for_o every_o cause_n luke_n 19.8_o but_o above_o all_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o universal_a love_n and_o charity_n to_o enemy_n to_o all_o mankind_n of_o what_o nation_n and_o religion_n soever_o they_o be_v which_o do_v so_o near_o resemble_v we_o to_o god_n himself_o who_o make_v his_o sun_n to_o rise_v on_o the_o evil_a and_o on_o the_o
be_v member_n of_o christ_n church_n in_o a_o word_n so_o honourable_a to_o god_n so_o perfective_a of_o our_o own_o nature_n and_o so_o beneficial_a to_o mankind_n be_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o well_o be_v our_o obedience_n secure_v to_o they_o by_o those_o principle_n he_o have_v teach_v we_o that_o this_o very_a thing_n do_v speak_v our_o exceed_a great_a privilege_n in_o be_v member_n of_o christ_n and_o under_o his_o conduct_n and_o government_n as_o our_o supreme_a head_n and_o lawgiver_n but_o especial_o this_o advantage_n will_v appear_v to_o be_v very_o great_a ordinance_n another_o branch_n of_o this_o first_o part_n of_o a_o a_o christian_n privilege_n be_v most_o edify_a and_o comfortable_a institution_n and_o ordinance_n if_o we_o consider_v how_o that_o together_o with_o those_o most_o excellent_a law_n that_o he_o have_v give_v we_o he_o have_v also_o appoint_v we_o most_o edify_v and_o comfortable_a ordinance_n to_o conduct_v we_o to_o heaven_n now_o by_o divine_a institution_n and_o ordinance_n i_o do_v mean_v those_o positive_a appointment_n and_o observation_n which_o he_o have_v give_v his_o church_n and_o all_o the_o member_n thereof_o for_o their_o improvement_n in_o the_o knowledge_n and_o practice_n of_o his_o holy_a religion_n and_o law_n and_o that_o which_o our_o great_a lawgiver_n have_v do_v of_o this_o nature_n be_v this_o he_o have_v ordain_v solemn_a and_o set_v day_n viz._n the_o christian_a sabbath_n for_o his_o own_o service_n he_o have_v order_v that_o public_a assembly_n of_o all_o christian_n shall_v be_v hold_v upon_o those_o day_n he_o have_v authorize_v and_o command_v the_o publication_n and_o preach_v of_o his_o law_n at_o those_o public_a assembly_n he_o have_v appoint_v that_o common-prayer_n supplication_n and_o thanksgiving_n for_o divine_a grace_n and_o assistance_n to_o enable_v we_o to_o perform_v these_o law_n then_o preach_v and_o for_o other_o mercy_n shall_v be_v joint_o put_v up_o to_o he_o by_o all_o christian_n on_o those_o solemn_a day_n and_o public_a assembly_n and_o last_o he_o have_v enjoin_v therein_o the_o use_n of_o sacrament_n as_o mean_n of_o convey_v such_o grace_n and_o assistance_n and_o also_o as_o oath_n and_o obligation_n upon_o we_o to_o be_v obedient_a to_o those_o law_n all_o which_o be_v the_o privilege_n that_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n visible_a church_n and_o if_o we_o compare_v they_o with_o what_o other_o want_v of_o this_o nature_n they_o be_v indeed_o most_o singular_a favour_n vouchsafe_v only_o to_o such_o as_o be_v member_n thereof_o and_o which_o alien_n and_o stranger_n have_v no_o right_n nor_o admittance_n to_o and_o consider_v in_o themselves_o they_o be_v most_o admirable_a advantage_n towards_o the_o observation_n of_o god_n most_o holy_a law_n and_o in_o order_n to_o a_o holy_a and_o good_a life_n church_n i._o public_a ordinance_n the_o privilege_n of_o every_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n first_o i_o say_v all_z these_o forementioned_a privilege_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n to_o such_o as_o have_v be_v baptise_a and_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v christian_n to_o understand_v which_o right_n and_o privilege_n the_o better_a you_o must_v know_v that_o as_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o member_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n so_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o privilege_n that_o belong_v to_o each_o sort_n as_o one_o right_o state_v this_o matter_n each_o have_v those_o privilege_n which_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o they_o according_a to_o the_o relation_n they_o bear_v to_o the_o head_n and_o their_o fellow-member_n first_o there_o be_v member_n only_o by_o foederal_n or_o covenant_n holiness_n such_o be_v only_o bear_v of_o water_n when_o by_o baptism_n they_o be_v unite_v to_o christ_n and_o the_o church_n and_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o profession_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n now_o the_o privilege_n that_o do_v belong_v to_o these_o be_v of_o the_o same_o make_v with_o their_o church-membership_n outward_a and_o consist_v only_o in_o outward_a and_o public_a communion_n with_o the_o church_n in_o word_n and_o ordinance_n second_o there_o be_v member_n by_o real_a and_o inherent_a holiness_n such_o as_o be_v not_o only_o bear_v of_o water_n but_o of_o the_o spirit_n also_o when_o by_o the_o inward_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n their_o soul_n be_v renew_v after_o the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o make_v partaker_n of_o a_o divine_a nature_n and_o the_o privilege_n that_o do_v belong_v to_o these_o be_v not_o only_o the_o forementioned_a one_o but_o together_o with_o they_o other_o that_o be_v suitable_a to_o their_o more_o spiritual_a relation_n inward_a and_o such_o as_o consist_v in_o the_o special_a and_o particular_a care_n and_o protection_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o more_o plentiful_a measure_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o in_o the_o more_o sensible_a comfort_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n according_a to_o that_o of_o our_o saviour_n mat._n 25.29_o unto_o every_o one_o that_o have_v or_o improve_v those_o talent_n of_o grace_n he_o have_v receive_v shall_v be_v give_v and_o he_o shall_v have_v abundance_n so_o that_o these_o latter_a and_o more_o peculiar_a privilege_n indeed_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o every_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n but_o to_o those_o only_a who_o be_v sincere_a in_o their_o profession_n of_o christianity_n and_o who_o by_o their_o more_o than_o ordinary_a piety_n be_v become_v dear_a to_o god_n but_o then_o as_o to_o outward_a privilege_n it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o duty_n but_o it_o be_v the_o privilege_n which_o of_o right_o belong_v to_o every_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n to_o observe_v the_o lord_n day_n to_o be_v present_a in_o the_o public_a assembly_n to_o join_v in_o the_o common-prayer_n and_o even_o to_o partake_v when_o of_o age_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n so_o we_o find_v act_v 2.41_o 42._o that_o the_o whole_a three_o thousand_o soul_n who_o receive_v the_o word_n and_o be_v baptise_a continue_v steadfast_o in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o fellowship_n and_o in_o break_v of_o bread_n and_o in_o prayer_n true_a it_o be_v such_o as_o that_o more_o than_o ordinary_a regard_n supper_n scandalous_a member_n to_o be_v suspend_v from_o the_o lord_n supper_n that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v for_o the_o lord_n supper_n that_o most_o solemn_a ordinance_n in_o the_o christian_a religion_n that_o when_o any_o member_n become_v scandalous_a for_o any_o sin_n he_o be_v to_o be_v suspend_v from_o communion_n in_o that_o till_o he_o amends_o so_o it_o be_v order_v in_o the_o rubric_n before_o the_o communion-service_n that_o if_o any_o be_v a_o open_a and_o notorious_a evil-liver_n so_o that_o the_o congregation_n be_v thereby_o offend_v the_o curate_n have_v knowledge_n thereof_o shall_v call_v he_o and_o advertise_v he_o that_o in_o any-wise_a he_o presume_v not_o to_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n until_o he_o have_v open_o declare_v himself_o to_o have_v true_o repent_v and_o amend_v his_o former_a naughty_a life_n that_o the_o congregation_n may_v thereby_o be_v satisfy_v which_o before_o be_v offend_v and_o the_o same_o order_n shall_v the_o curate_n use_v with_o those_o betwixt_o who_o he_o perceive_v malice_n and_o hatred_n to_o reign_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v partaker_n at_o the_o lord_n table_n till_o he_o know_v they_o to_o be_v reconcile_v but_o otherwise_o till_o a_o member_n become_v notorious_a and_o scandalous_a for_o his_o evil_a principle_n or_o practice_n he_o may_v claim_v the_o right_a to_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o lord_n supper_n for_o even_o judas_n himself_o before_o he_o betray_v our_o saviour_n do_v partake_v with_o he_o at_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o the_o supper_n as_o you_o will_v find_v matth._n 26.25_o 26._o so_o that_o as_o to_o the_o outward_a institution_n and_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v privilege_n you_o see_v that_o do_v belong_v to_o all_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n to_o all_o such_o as_o have_v be_v baptise_a and_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v christian_n and_o now_o second_o enjoy_v i._o christian_n ordinance_n be_v a_o singular_a favour_n which_o alien_n and_o unbeliever_n do_v not_o nor_o have_v any_o right_a to_o enjoy_v if_o we_o compare_v but_o these_o outward_a privilege_n of_o god_n holy_a ordinance_n with_o what_o other_o do_v want_n of_o this_o nature_n they_o be_v indeed_o most_o singular_a favour_n vouchsafe_v only_o to_o such_o as_o be_v member_n of_o christ_n church_n and_o which_o alien_n and_o stranger_n have_v no_o right_n nor_o admittance_n to_o for_o alas_o the_o infidel_n part_n of_o the_o world_n whether_o jew_n turk_n or_o pagan_n have_v none_o of_o these_o divine_a ordinance_n among_o '_o they_o they_o neither_o know_v the_o lord_n day_n nor_o hold_v any_o assembly_n thereon_o for_o the_o instruction_n in_o his_o law_n
manna_n but_o when_o persecution_n at_o any_o time_n arise_v and_o the_o church_n door_n be_v shut_v up_o and_o divine_a ordinance_n be_v forbid_v upon_o pain_n of_o death_n how_o then_o shall_v you_o see_v those_o very_o same_o person_n go_v many_o mile_n and_o with_o the_o utmost_a hazard_n of_o their_o life_n assemble_v themselves_o together_o and_o take_v the_o great_a comfort_n imaginable_a in_o enjoy_v '_o they_o this_o the_o experience_n of_o all_o age_n do_v confirm_v and_o god_n grant_v our_o present_a neglect_n of_o his_o holy_a institution_n and_o ordinance_n may_v not_o provoke_v he_o to_o teach_v we_o also_o how_o to_o value_v and_o esteem_v the_o privilege_n and_o advantage_n of_o they_o by_o deprive_v we_o thereof_o and_o thus_o i_o have_v at_o length_n show_v you_o how_o that_o the_o first_o great_a privilege_n which_o do_v peculiar_o belong_v to_o all_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n visible_a church_n as_o they_o be_v the_o member_n of_o such_o a_o society_n be_v a_o most_o reasonable_a and_o excellent_a body_n of_o religion_n and_o law_n together_o with_o most_o profitable_a and_o edify_v institution_n and_o ordinance_n give_v and_o appoint_v we_o by_o he_o our_o supreme_a head_n and_o governor_n to_o conduct_v we_o to_o heaven_n and_o now_o it_o be_v time_n to_o proceed_v and_o to_o show_v you_o how_o that_o second_o law_n the_o second_o general_a privilege_n belong_v to_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n be_v a_o sufficient_a measure_n of_o divine_a grace_n and_o assistance_n derive_v from_o he_o the_o head_n and_o convey_v by_o his_o ordinance_n to_o enable_n we_o to_o conform_v ourselves_o to_o his_o religion_n and_o to_o obey_v his_o law_n we_o enjoy_v thereby_o a_o great_a measure_n of_o divine_a grace_n and_o assistance_n derive_v down_o from_o he_o our_o head_n and_o convey_v by_o those_o his_o ordinance_n to_o enable_n we_o to_o conform_v to_o his_o religion_n and_o to_o obey_v his_o law_n the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v often_o compare_v in_o scripture_n to_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o man_n and_o that_o as_o for_o many_o other_o so_o for_o this_o very_a good_a reason_n that_o as_o in_o the_o natural_a body_n every_o part_n partake_v of_o life_n and_o sense_n and_o motion_n from_o the_o head_n so_o do_v we_o by_o be_v baptise_a member_n of_o christ_n derive_v grace_n and_o help_v from_o he_o our_o head_n from_o who_o all_o the_o body_n by_o joint_n and_o band_n have_v nourishment_n minister_v increase_v with_o the_o increase_n of_o god_n col._n 2.19_o member_n by_o the_o same_o mean_n that_o christ_n be_v unite_v to_o his_o member_n be_v grace_n convey_v down_o from_o he_o as_o head_n to_o those_o member_n now_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o conceive_v how_o christ_n as_o a_o political_a head_n shall_v give_v law_n to_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n the_o church_n and_o how_o as_o such_o he_o shall_v head_n and_o protect_v it_o and_o every_o member_n thereof_o against_o its_o enemy_n but_o the_o difficulty_n with_o some_o be_v to_o conceive_v how_o as_o from_o a_o mystical_a head_n divine_a grace_n and_o assistance_n shall_v be_v convey_v down_o from_o he_o to_o we_o his_o member_n but_o it_o be_v but_o to_o consider_v what_o those_o joint_n and_o band_n be_v which_o unite_v we_o to_o christ_n as_o our_o head_n and_o we_o may_v then_o easy_o conceive_v how_o we_o shall_v have_v nourishment_n minister_v unto_o we_o till_o we_o increase_v with_o the_o increase_n of_o god_n for_o whatever_o be_v the_o mean_n of_o unite_n we_o to_o he_o the_o same_o be_v the_o mean_n also_o of_o convey_v the_o influence_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n down_o upon_o we_o church_n the_o first_o medium_fw-la of_o union_n betwixt_o christ_n and_o his_o member_n must_v be_v each_o member_n union_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o first_o great_a mean_n of_o unite_n each_o member_n to_o christ_n must_v be_v its_o union_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o cut_v himself_o off_o from_o it_o either_o by_o renounce_v his_o covenant_n with_o god_n or_o by_o causless_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o sound_n and_o orthodox_n part_v of_o the_o church_n whereof_o he_o be_v a_o immediate_a member_n and_o by_o not_o give_v just_a occasion_n to_o the_o officer_n of_o christ_n spiritual_a kingdom_n the_o church_n to_o excommunicate_v or_o cut_v he_o off_o for_o so_o do_v for_o it_o be_v just_a with_o the_o mystical_a body_n the_o church_n as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o man._n if_o a_o leg_n or_o a_o arm_n shall_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o body_n by_o a_o man_n be_v own_o hand_n or_o by_o the_o king_n officer_n it_o can_v receive_v nourishment_n from_o the_o head_n and_o for_o lack_v thereof_o must_v soon_o die_v and_o so_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n a_o heretic_n that_o for_o deny_v the_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n and_o a_o schismatic_a who_o for_o break_v the_o communion_n shall_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n can_v ordinary_o expect_v to_o receive_v supply_n of_o grace_n from_o christ_n the_o mystical_a head_n which_o by_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n he_o may_v but_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a in_o order_n to_o its_o derive_v life_n from_o the_o head_n that_o a_o member_n be_v unite_v to_o the_o body_n only_o and_o to_o any_o of_o its_o part_n but_o it_o be_v moreover_o particular_o necessary_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v unite_v also_o to_o those_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o body_n where_o the_o blood_n and_o spirit_n be_v form_v and_o from_o whence_o they_o be_v convey_v to_o every_o single_a member_n and_o therefore_o church_n ii_o its_o union_n to_o the_o lawful_a governor_n and_o teacher_n of_o the_o church_n a_o second_o mean_n of_o unite_n each_o member_n to_o christ_n the_o head_n and_o so_o of_o convey_v spiritual_a supply_n of_o grace_n down_o from_o he_o to_o such_o a_o member_n be_v its_o unity_n to_o those_o lawful_a governor_n and_o teacher_n which_o christ_n have_v appoint_v in_o the_o church_n by_o join_v with_o they_o in_o the_o same_o fundamental_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n and_o by_o hold_v communion_n with_o they_o in_o the_o same_o holy_a worship_n of_o god_n the_o lawful_a governor_n and_o teacher_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o principal_a part_n in_o the_o mystical_a body_n as_o the_o heart_n the_o liver_n and_o the_o brain_n be_v in_o the_o natural_a for_o as_o in_o the_o natural_a from_o these_o principal_a part_n be_v send_v forth_o that_o portion_n of_o blood_n and_o spirit_n which_o give_v life_n and_o strength_n to_o every_o single_a member_n so_o from_o christ_n minister_n be_v communicate_v to_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n that_o nourishment_n which_o maintain_v the_o spiritual_a life_n in_o they_o all_o this_o may_v be_v fair_o gather_v from_o eph._n 4.11_o 12_o 13._o he_o give_v some_o apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n and_o some_o evangelist_n and_o some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o edify_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n till_o we_o all_o come_v into_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n unto_o a_o perfect_a man_n unto_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o stature_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n in_o which_o word_n the_o minister_n of_o christ_n church_n whether_o extraordinary_a as_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n or_o ordinary_a as_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n be_v say_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o hold_v and_o knit_v together_o the_o church_n and_o that_o from_o they_o each_o member_n do_v immediate_o receive_v that_o nourishment_n of_o sound_a doctrine_n whereby_o he_o grow_v up_o to_o be_v a_o perfect_a man_n in_o the_o knowledge_n and_o practice_n of_o true_a religion_n and_o indeed_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v convey_v by_o those_o ordinance_n which_o they_o only_o have_v power_n to_o administer_v which_o bring_v i_o last_o to_o show_v how_o ordinance_n iii_o the_o use_n of_o christ_n institution_n and_o ordinance_n that_o next_o to_o the_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o church_n and_o its_o principal_a part_n the_o minister_n of_o christ_n therein_o the_o great_a bond_n of_o union_n to_o the_o head_n and_o mean_n of_o convey_v his_o grace_n to_o the_o member_n be_v the_o sacrament_n and_o other_o holy_a office_n and_o ordinance_n appoint_v for_o that_o purpose_n and_o of_o which_o the_o minister_n of_o religion_n be_v the_o only_a dispenser_n for_o just_a again_o as_o in_o the_o body_n natural_a there_o be_v nerve_n that_o branch_n from_o the_o head_n through_o the_o body_n convey_v the_o animal_n spirit_n to_o every_o member_n thereof_o so_o in_o the_o mystical_a
to_o the_o intent_n that_o give_v a_o extraordinary_a proof_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o constancy_n and_o patience_n and_o love_n to_o he_o he_o may_v extraordinary_o reward_v '_o they_o every_o one_o that_o have_v forsake_v house_n or_o brethren_n or_o sister_n or_o father_n or_o mother_n or_o wife_n or_o child_n or_o land_n for_o his_o name_n sake_n be_v certain_a to_o receive_v a_o hundred_o fold_v and_o to_o inherit_v everlasting_a life_n mat._n 19.29_o thereof_o ii_o hezekiah_n to_o discover_v his_o hypocrisy_n and_o to_o humble_v he_o in_o the_o sight_n thereof_o second_o we_o find_v that_o god_n tempt_v hezekiah_n in_o order_n to_o discover_v to_o he_o his_o own_o hypocrisy_n and_o corruption_n and_o the_o pride_n of_o his_o own_o heart_n that_o he_o may_v be_v humble_v in_o the_o sight_n and_o sense_n thereof_o for_o hezekiah_n be_v late_o recover_v from_o a_o mortal_a sickness_n by_o the_o miraculous_a providence_n of_o god_n the_o prince_n of_o babylon_n send_v their_o ambassador_n unto_o he_o to_o inquire_v of_o the_o wonder_n that_o be_v do_v in_o the_o land_n and_o god_n leave_v he_o to_o try_v he_o that_o he_o may_v know_v all_o that_o be_v in_o his_o heart_n 2_o chron._n 32.31_o that_o be_v god_n do_v providential_o order_v the_o come_v of_o those_o foreign_a ambassador_n upon_o this_o errand_n to_o try_v hezekiah_n whether_o he_o will_v take_v this_o occasion_n before_o those_o idolater_n who_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o those_o which_o be_v no_o god_n to_o glorify_v the_o true_a god_n of_o israel_n for_o so_o miraculous_o recover_v of_o he_o but_o he_o be_v more_o intent_n upon_o set_v out_o his_o own_o grandeur_n than_o god_n glory_n take_v care_n only_o to_o show_v they_o all_o the_o house_n of_o his_o precious_a thing_n the_o silver_n and_o the_o gold_n and_o the_o spice_n and_o the_o precious_a ointment_n and_o all_o the_o house_n of_o his_o armour_n and_o all_o the_o house_n of_o his_o treasure_n 2_o king_n 20.13_o upon_o which_o god_n do_v severe_o reprove_v and_o humble_v he_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o prophet_n isaiah_n ver_fw-la 17_o 18_o 19_o for_o such_o his_o ingratitude_n pride_n and_o vanity_n and_o so_o it_o be_v with_o every_o one_o of_o we_o there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o pride_n and_o vanity_n and_o other_o corruption_n and_o secret_a hypocrisy_n which_o lie_v lurk_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o we_o ourselves_o be_v ignorant_a thereof_o and_o how_o we_o shall_v prove_v till_o we_o be_v try_v and_o some_o providential_a occasion_n draw_v it_o out_o and_o then_o if_o god_n word_n or_o minister_n or_o the_o rebuke_n of_o our_o own_o conscience_n make_v we_o sensible_a thereof_o we_o be_v much_o better_v and_o god_n have_v his_o gracious_a end_n in_o our_o amendment_n so_o that_o thus_o you_o see_v to_o what_o good_a purpose_v god_n do_v tempt_v we_o namely_o either_o to_o prove_v our_o virtue_n that_o he_o may_v reward_v we_o the_o better_a for_o it_o or_o to_o discover_v our_o hypocrisy_n and_o insincerity_n that_o we_o may_v be_v humble_v in_o the_o sight_n and_o sense_n thereof_o and_o be_v thereby_o amend_v re_fw-mi these_o temptation_n of_o god_n be_v therefore_o in_o no_o sense_n to_o be_v renounce_v but_o to_o be_v re_fw-mi such_o temptation_n therefore_o as_o these_o be_v none_o of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n nor_o in_o any_o sense_n to_o be_v renounce_v by_o we_o nay_o rather_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o count_v it_o all_o joy_n when_o we_o fall_v into_o these_o divers_a temptation_n of_o god_n order_n know_v this_o that_o the_o try_v of_o our_o faith_n work_v patience_n jam._n 1.2_o 3._o they_o give_v we_o a_o opportunity_n of_o exercise_v the_o noble_a virtue_n of_o christianity_n bitual_o commit_v will_v cause_v in_o they_o such_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n as_o will_v disable_v they_o at_o length_n to_o know_v any_o difference_n between_o good_a and_o evil._n and_o by_o this_o very_a wile_n he_o to_o this_o day_n mind_n by_o these_o mean_n he_o bring_v that_o ignorance_n in_o divine_a matter_n which_o reign_v in_o most_o man_n mind_n spread_v such_o a_o ignorance_n over_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n as_o make_v even_o darkness_n itself_o seem_v to_o reign_v where_o the_o gospel_n have_v so_o long_o shine_v for_o by_o engage_v some_o into_o nice_a inquiry_n after_o a_o thousand_o other_o thing_n he_o draw_v they_o off_o from_o ever_o look_v into_o their_o bibles_n and_o as_o to_o other_o by_o decoy_a they_o into_o one_o sin_n after_o another_o he_o do_v at_o length_n improve_v their_o knowledge_n of_o evil_a to_o that_o degree_n that_o at_o last_o they_o come_v to_o know_v nothing_o of_o good_a nay_o to_o have_v so_o little_a a_o sense_n of_o it_o such_o stupefy_v apprehension_n concern_v it_o as_o to_z call_v evil_a good_a and_o good_a evil._n and_o then_o have_v once_o blindfolded_a the_o reason_n of_o man_n misery_n and_o be_v spiritual_o ignorant_a man_n be_v easy_o lead_v into_o whatever_o sin_n and_o misery_n with_o the_o ignorance_n of_o divine_a thing_n what_o sin_n and_o misery_n be_v there_o that_o satan_n do_v not_o most_o easy_o lead_v man_n into_o for_o why_o good_a and_o useful_a knowledge_n such_o as_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o ourselves_o and_o of_o our_o duty_n to_o he_o be_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o soul_n whereby_o alone_o it_o can_v see_v its_o way_n and_o steer_v its_o course_n safe_o towards_o heaven_n whereas_o on_o the_o other_o side_n ignorance_n of_o god_n and_o religion_n be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o mind_n as_o blindness_n in_o the_o eye_n and_o therefore_o as_o a_o blind_a man_n may_v with_o the_o great_a ease_n be_v draw_v aside_o into_o pit_n and_o over_o rock_n to_o his_o downfall_n and_o destruction_n and_o it_o be_v next_o to_o impossible_a he_o shall_v ever_o get_v safe_a to_o his_o journey_n end_v so_o a_o ignorant_a man_n in_o religious_a matter_n must_v needs_o be_v a_o easy_a prey_n to_o satan_n and_o false_a deceiver_n and_o he_o can_v possible_o tell_v how_o to_o steer_v his_o course_n safe_a towards_o heaven_n but_o must_v almost_o necessary_o suffer_v shipwreck_n of_o body_n and_o soul_n in_o hell_n so_o that_o this_o policy_n of_o the_o devil_n in_o corrupt_v the_o understanding_n and_o reason_n of_o man_n by_o put_v he_o upon_o curious_a inquiry_n and_o a_o sinful_a experiment_n in_o order_n as_o he_o pretend_v to_o enlarge_v his_o knowledge_n but_o in_o reality_n with_o a_o design_n to_o draw_v over_o his_o soul_n a_o thick_a cloud_n of_o ignorance_n that_o so_o he_o may_v lead_v he_o blindfold_a into_o any_o sin_n and_o misery_n be_v a_o depth_n of_o satan_n that_o be_v and_o still_o be_v most_o fatal_a and_o destructive_a to_o our_o innocence_n and_o to_o our_o happiness_n and_o this_o therefore_o be_v another_o wile_n of_o satan_n avoid_v this_o therefore_o another_o wile_n of_o satan_n which_o must_v be_v careful_o avoid_v which_o you_o must_v also_o careful_o avoid_v you_o must_v above_o all_o thing_n beware_v of_o ever_o make_v experiment_n of_o the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n vain_o deceive_v your_o own_o soul_n with_o the_o expectation_n that_o have_v once_o know_v what_o be_v in_o they_o you_o will_v the_o more_o abhor_v they_o for_o the_o future_a few_o of_o those_o who_o do_v make_v such_o sinful_a experiment_n do_v afterward_o return_v to_o a_o sound_n and_o sober_a sense_n of_o thing_n not_o that_o they_o find_v any_o reason_n to_o stick_v to_o those_o course_n but_o because_o the_o way_n of_o sin_n be_v mere_a maze_n which_o once_o enter_v into_o be_v hardly_o get_v out_o of_o and_o because_o sin_n often_o commit_v do_v at_o length_n sear_v the_o conscience_n and_o drive_v away_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o so_o the_o wretched_a sinner_n become_v utter_o ignorant_a of_o god_n way_n and_o the_o happiness_n it_o will_v be_v to_o he_o to_o walk_v therein_o and_o in_o this_o their_o ignorance_n what_o pit_n of_o destruction_n be_v there_o which_o satan_n can_v draw_v they_o into_o you_o must_v therefore_o i_o say_v above_o all_o thing_n endeavour_v as_o to_o expel_v all_o ignorance_n of_o divine_a thing_n out_o of_o your_o mind_n so_o the_o great_a cause_n thereof_o of_o satan_n contrivance_n namely_o curiosity_n after_o vain_a and_o unprofitable_a thing_n which_o will_v divert_v you_o from_o what_o do_v infinite_o more_o concern_v you_o viz._n the_o good_a state_n of_o your_o soul_n and_o you_o must_v careful_o beware_v of_o experimental_o know_v sin_n the_o commission_n and_o acquaintance_n with_o which_o will_v draw_v a_o thick_a cloud_n of_o ignorance_n over_o your_o mind_n as_o have_v be_v speak_v and_o hereby_o you_o will_v also_o renounce_v and_o defeat_v another_o considerable_a temptation_n and_o wile_n of_o satan_n to_o draw_v we_o into_o a_o course_n of_o sin_n evil._n iii_o by_o bribe_v
very_a bowel_n of_o christendom_n that_o be_v a_o succession_n of_o heretic_n who_o have_v a_o form_n of_o godliness_n but_o deny_v the_o power_n thereof_o 2_o tim._n 3.5_o under_o the_o name_n and_o profession_n of_o christian_n do_v sad_o weaken_v christ_n and_o most_o effectual_o promote_v the_o interest_n of_o satan_n kingdom_n and_o who_o have_v spill_v more_o blood_n perhaps_o in_o establish_v their_o heresy_n their_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n than_o be_v ever_o do_v by_o heathen_a rome_n and_o all_o the_o other_o pagan_a persecution_n put_v together_o so_o much_o you_o see_v it_o be_v the_o endeavour_n of_o satan_n utter_o to_o destroy_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n from_o off_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n truth_n and_o now_o all_o christian_n be_v so_o far_o to_o renounce_v satan_n with_o respect_n to_o those_o his_o persecute_v temptation_n as_o to_o submit_v to_o the_o sore_a suffering_n which_o satan_n and_o his_o wicked_a instrument_n can_v inflict_v rather_o than_o deny_v christ_n or_o his_o truth_n and_o now_o the_o question_n be_v what_o it_o be_v and_o how_o far_o we_o be_v to_o renounce_v the_o devil_n with_o respect_n to_o these_o his_o persecute_v temptation_n and_o fiery_a trial_n and_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n for_o end_n best_o know_v to_o himself_o to_o let_v loose_v the_o fury_n of_o the_o dragon_n upon_o we_o as_o there_o be_v hardly_o any_o age_n from_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o christianity_n down_o to_o our_o present_a time_n in_o which_o he_o have_v not_o and_o do_v not_o in_o some_o part_n or_o other_o of_o the_o church_n exercise_v the_o faith_n and_o patience_n of_o the_o saint_n why_o then_o our_o part_n must_v be_v after_o the_o example_n of_o those_o who_o have_v go_v before_o we_o in_o the_o fiery_a trial_n to_o submit_v to_o the_o sore_a suffering_n which_o satan_n and_o his_o wicked_a instrument_n can_v inflict_v upon_o we_o rather_o than_o deny_v christ_n or_o his_o truth_n million_o i_o say_v of_o martyr_n and_o confessor_n have_v go_v before_o we_o in_o this_o way_n of_o renounce_v the_o devil_n and_o his_o persecute_v method_n of_o tempt_v and_o the_o time_n will_v fail_v i_o to_o tell_v what_o trial_n they_o have_v of_o cruel_a mock_n and_o scourge_n yea_o moreover_o of_o bond_n and_o imprisonment_n how_o they_o be_v stone_v be_v saw_v asunder_o be_v tempt_v be_v slay_v with_o the_o sword_n how_o they_o wander_v about_o in_o sheepskin_n and_o goatskin_n be_v destitute_a afflict_a torment_v heb._n 11.36_o 37._o and_o all_o this_o they_o suffer_v rather_o than_o they_o will_v deny_v the_o faith_n or_o in_o the_o least_o comply_v with_o idolatry_n or_o heresy_n or_o with_o any_o sin_n and_o wickedness_n to_o which_o satan_n and_o his_o instrument_n will_v have_v force_v '_o they_o and_o so_o must_v we_o likewise_o we_o must_v all_o of_o we_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n utter_o renounce_v the_o devil_n and_o resist_v unto_o blood_n his_o tempt_v we_o to_o heresy_n or_o sin_n if_o call_v thereunto_o our_o bless_a saviour_n have_v make_v it_o the_o indispensible_a condition_n of_o all_o his_o follower_n so_o to_o do_v matth._n 16.24_o if_o any_o man_n will_v come_v after_o i_o let_v he_o deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n and_o follow_v i_o and_o indeed_o those_o be_v the_o happy_a man_n who_o be_v persecute_v for_o their_o adherence_n to_o christ_n and_o true_a religion_n against_o satan_n and_o his_o wicked_a invention_n bless_a be_v they_o which_o be_v persecute_v for_o righteousness_n sake_n for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n matth._n 5.10_o their_o persecution_n tend_v in_o the_o end_n both_o to_o their_o own_o great_a reward_n great_a be_v their_o reward_n in_o heaven_n for_o 12._o and_o to_o the_o far_a increase_n and_o propagation_n of_o truth_n when_o the_o devil_n have_v do_v his_o worst_a the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n like_o the_o palmtree_n be_v find_v to_o spread_v the_o wide_a for_o be_v oppress_v and_o therefore_o he_o ii_o when_o those_o bloody_a method_n fail_v satan_n then_o do_v endeavour_n so_o to_o corrupt_v man_n notion_n of_o god_n and_o religion_n that_o by_o their_o very_a christianity_n they_o may_v dishonour_v he_o second_o when_o those_o bloody_a method_n fail_v he_o and_o instead_o of_o extinguish_v christianity_n the_o blood_n of_o the_o martyr_n prove_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o church_n then_o with_o all_o the_o art_n and_o close_a contrivance_n possible_a do_v he_o endeavour_v to_o corrupt_v man_n notion_n of_o god_n and_o religion_n so_o that_o by_o their_o very_a christianity_n they_o may_v dishonour_v he_o the_o dishonour_n of_o god_n and_o the_o debase_v his_o authority_n among_o man_n together_o with_o the_o subjection_n of_o man_n to_o himself_o and_o the_o ruin_n of_o our_o soul_n be_v the_o thing_n he_o aim_v at_o and_o provide_v he_o compass_n this_o end_n he_o care_v not_o by_o what_o mean_v it_o be_v whether_o by_o force_n or_o by_o fraud_n and_o according_o he_o have_v his_o title_n give_v he_o in_o the_o scripture_n from_o both_o where_o he_o be_v call_v a_o lion_n from_o his_o fury_n a_o serpent_n from_o his_o subtlety_n and_o indeed_o if_o by_o the_o former_a he_o have_v slay_v his_o thousand_o by_o these_o he_o have_v destroy_v his_o ten_o thousand_o so_o that_o of_o all_o his_o method_n to_o ruin_n we_o it_o do_v infinite_o concern_v we_o that_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o these_o his_o device_n now_o these_o politic_a method_n of_o he_o seed_n these_o politic_a method_n of_o he_o discover_v to_o we_o under_o the_o parable_n of_o a_o malicious_a enemy_n come_v private_o in_o the_o night_n &_o sow_v tare_n where_o the_o husbandman_n have_v before_o sow_o good_a seed_n whereby_o he_o endeavour_n to_o corrupt_v man_n notion_n of_o god_n and_o religion_n so_o that_o by_o their_o very_a religion_n they_o may_v dishonour_v he_o be_v discover_v to_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n under_o the_o parable_n of_o some_o malicious_a enemy_n who_o come_v private_o in_o the_o night_n sow_v tare_n where_o the_o husbandman_n have_v before_o sow_o good_a seed_n the_o parable_n run_v thus_o matth._n 13.24_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v liken_v unto_o a_o man_n which_o sow_a good_a seed_n in_o his_o field_n but_o while_o man_n sleep_v his_o enemy_n come_v and_o sow_v tare_n among_o the_o wheat_n and_o go_v his_o way_n but_o when_o the_o blade_n be_v spring_v up_o and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n than_o appear_v the_o tare_n also_o and_o in_o the_o 37_o 38_o 39_o ver_fw-la our_o saviour_n himself_o give_v we_o this_o explication_n of_o it_o he_o that_o sow_v the_o good_a seed_n be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n the_o field_n be_v the_o world_n the_o good_a seed_n be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o kingdom_n that_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o religion_n and_o their_o good_a doctrine_n the_o tare_n be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o wicked_a one_o that_o be_v heretic_n and_o their_o evil_a principle_n the_o enemy_n that_o sow_v they_o be_v the_o devil_n from_o which_o parable_n and_o explication_n of_o our_o saviour_n we_o may_v observe_v seedsman_n like_o a_o skilful_a husbandman_n he_o be_v choice_n about_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o seed_n the_o temper_n and_o preparedness_n of_o the_o soil_n the_o fitness_n of_o the_o season_n and_o the_o skilfulness_n of_o the_o seedsman_n that_o the_o most_o skilful_a husbandman_n be_v not_o more_o curious_a about_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o seed_n the_o temper_n and_o preparedness_n of_o the_o soil_n and_o the_o fitness_n of_o the_o season_n and_o the_o skilfulness_n of_o the_o seedsman_n than_o satan_n be_v choice_n and_o considerate_a about_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o erroneous_a doctrine_n the_o preparation_n of_o man_n mind_n to_o receive_v they_o about_o the_o most_o proper_a and_o seasonable_a time_n of_o disperse_v they_o and_o the_o capacity_n and_o quality_n of_o those_o his_o agent_n who_o he_o employ_v to_o sow_v they_o in_o the_o soul_n of_o men._n and_o discovery_n and_o first_o as_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o seed_n he_o take_v care_v his_o heretical_a opinion_n and_o practice_n shall_v bear_v some_o resemblance_n of_o divine_a truth_n in_o order_n to_o conceal_v their_o discovery_n first_o i_o do_v take_v it_o to_o be_v infinite_o worth_a your_o while_n to_o consider_v that_o those_o heretical_a principle_n and_o opinion_n which_o satan_n do_v choose_v to_o blend_v with_o christianity_n do_v general_o bear_v some_o resemblance_n of_o divine_a truth_n in_o order_n to_o conceal_v their_o discovery_n so_o that_o as_o the_o tare_n which_o the_o enemy_n sow_v be_v not_o distinguishable_a till_o the_o wheat_n grow_v up_o and_o bear_v fruit_n so_o the_o heretical_a and_o impious_a doctrine_n of_o satan_n infuse_v can_v scarce_o be_v know_v but_o by_o their_o fruit_n to_o which_o way_n of_o try_v they_o
our_o saviour_n do_v therefore_o direct_v we_o and_o thus_o he_o do_v usual_o gilled_a over_o his_o error_n here_o thus_o especial_o he_o gild_v his_o error_n where_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v most_o clear_o shine_v as_o here_o with_o the_o resemblance_n of_o divine_a truth_n especial_o in_o those_o church_n and_o country_n where_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v most_o clear_o shine_v and_o i_o think_v i_o can_v do_v you_o better_a service_n than_o to_o instance_n in_o some_o of_o those_o pernicious_a error_n both_o in_o faith_n and_o practice_n of_o this_o kind_a which_o do_v at_o present_a infest_v this_o church_n and_o nation_n that_o so_o you_o may_v be_v caution_v against_o the_o entertainment_n of_o they_o and_o first_o it_o be_v usual_a with_o satan_n here_o among_o we_o other_o i._o when_o under_o the_o plausible_a appearance_n of_o advance_v god_n honour_n in_o some_o of_o his_o attribute_n he_o render_v he_o odious_a and_o despise_a in_o other_o under_o the_o plausible_a appearance_n and_o colour_n of_o advance_v god_n honour_n in_o some_o of_o his_o attribute_n to_o render_v he_o odious_a and_o despise_a in_o other_o thus_o for_o instance_n by_o infuse_v into_o man_n heart_n a_o belief_n that_o god_n have_v create_v the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n on_o purpose_n to_o manifest_v his_o dominion_n and_o power_n and_o justice_n in_o damn_v they_o afterward_o for_o their_o sin_n he_o rob_v he_o of_o the_o honour_n of_o be_v a_o gracious_a merciful_a and_o good_a god_n to_o the_o utter_a abolish_n of_o all_o veneration_n towards_o he_o and_o love_n of_o he_o insomuch_o that_o the_o very_a atheist_n who_o deny_v there_o be_v a_o god_n do_v not_o so_o much_o affront_v he_o as_o even_o a_o sober_a heathen_a thought_n as_o those_o who_o think_v so_o dishonourble_o of_o he_o life_n ii_o when_o under_o the_o colour_n of_o advance_v gospel_n truth_n he_o propagate_v heresy_n which_o do_v undermine_v religion_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o holy_a life_n second_o under_o the_o colour_n of_o set_v up_o as_o the_o most_o precious_a gospel_n truth_n some_o opinion_n that_o seem_v to_o have_v a_o great_a resemblance_n of_o truth_n he_o bring_v in_o such_o heresy_n into_o the_o church_n as_o do_v utter_o undermine_v religion_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o good_a life_n thus_o by_o his_o teach_v that_o christ_n have_v so_o pay_v the_o whole_a debt_n for_o our_o sin_n that_o the_o vile_a wretch_n that_o live_v need_v no_o more_o but_o be_v persuade_v that_o he_o be_v a_o elect_v person_n and_o that_o the_o promise_n belong_v to_o he_o on_o the_o assurance_n of_o his_o particular_a election_n and_o that_o such_o a_o faith_n as_o this_o will_v save_v he_o but_o by_o virtue_n of_o such_o a_o opinion_n of_o satan_n infuse_v no_o doubt_n you_o shall_v too_o often_o find_v a_o envious_a malicious_a viper_n a_o covetous_a worldling_n a_o rebel_n and_o a_o adulterer_n even_o before_o his_o sin_n be_v repent_v of_o talk_v of_o recumb_a and_o lean_v upon_o christ_n and_o roll_v upon_o the_o promise_v as_o they_o be_v please_v to_o express_v it_o with_o more_o assurance_n than_o the_o best_a and_o holy_a liver_n and_o the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o christ_n another_o iii_o when_o he_o teach_v to_o prefer_v some_o eminent_a christian_a duty_n or_o some_o part_n of_o a_o duty_n or_o one_o way_n of_o perform_v a_o duty_n to_o the_o disparagement_n of_o another_o three_o a_o most_o fatal_a and_o mischievous_a delusion_n of_o satan_n rise_v among_o we_o in_o this_o nation_n at_o this_o day_n be_v his_o teach_v man_n to_o prefer_v some_o eminent_a christian_a duty_n or_o one_o part_n of_o a_o duty_n or_o one_o way_n and_o manner_n of_o perform_v a_o duty_n to_o the_o disparagement_n of_o another_o thus_o you_o shall_v often_o see_v some_o careless_a whether_o they_o come_v to_o prayer_n or_o not_o so_o they_o can_v be_v but_o at_o the_o sermon_n and_o other_o on_o the_o contrary_a say_v they_o care_v not_o whether_o they_o shall_v hear_v a_o sermon_n in_o their_o life_n so_o they_o can_v have_v but_o prayer_n but_o the_o most_o notorious_a cheat_n he_o put_v upon_o man_n be_v his_o infuse_v into_o their_o heart_n to_o prefer_v one_o part_n of_o a_o duty_n to_o the_o utter_a contempt_n of_o the_o other_o thus_o because_o in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o prayer_n and_o praise_n to_o perform_v this_o with_o a_o hearty_a inward_a devotion_n be_v principal_o require_v and_o we_o be_v command_v that_o since_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n christian_n must_v worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n prayer_n as_o to_o prefer_v prayer_n to_o the_o neglect_n of_o preach_v or_o sermon_n to_o the_o contempt_n of_o prayer_n hence_o vast_a number_n of_o man_n do_v conclude_v that_o outward_a reverence_n by_o kneel_v lift_v up_o the_o eye_n and_o the_o like_a be_v a_o mere_a outward_a ceremony_n not_o at_o all_o necessary_a under_o the_o gospel_n insomuch_o that_o god_n be_v now_o most_o high_o dishonour_v even_o in_o our_o public_a assembly_n where_o we_o come_v to_o do_v he_o honour_n by_o the_o shameful_a want_n of_o reverence_n appear_v in_o most_o people_n by_o sit_v at_o their_o very_a prayer_n so_o true_a it_o be_v what_o one_o say_v that_o such_o a_o rude_a and_o slovenly_a kind_a of_o religion_n worship_n as_o also_o pray_v in_o spirit_n to_o the_o regard_n of_o bodily_a worship_n have_v make_v its_o way_n into_o the_o world_n by_o this_o policy_n of_o satan_n and_o such_o a_o shameful_a carelessness_n in_o divine_a worship_n that_o shall_v a_o stranger_n to_o our_o religion_n come_v into_o our_o assembly_n he_o can_v not_o by_o the_o carriage_n of_o the_o generality_n of_o people_n imagine_v what_o they_o be_v do_v and_o that_o they_o be_v worship_v of_o the_o glorious_a majesty_n of_o heaven_n will_v perhaps_o be_v one_o of_o the_o last_o thing_n he_o can_v conjecture_n prayer_n and_o extemporary_a prayer_n to_o the_o utter_a contempt_n of_o form_n of_o prayer_n but_o the_o most_o fatal_a error_n of_o this_o kind_a the_o most_o mischievous_a to_o the_o church_n and_o nation_n and_o to_o man_n soul_n therein_o be_v the_o prefer_v a_o way_n of_o perform_v a_o duty_n that_o be_v vnpracticable_a by_o the_o generality_n of_o christian_n to_o the_o utter_a disparagement_n of_o another_o more_o easy_a and_o no_o less_o acceptable_a way_n of_o discharge_v it_o this_o be_v eminent_o see_v in_o advance_v extemporary_a prayer_n as_o the_o only_a spiritual_a way_n of_o worship_v and_o in_o raise_v prejudices_fw-la in_o the_o mind_n of_o christian_n against_o form_n of_o prayer_n as_o not_o spiritual_a enough_o if_o at_o all_o lawful_a it_o be_v very_o certain_a that_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n be_v utter_o unable_a to_o conceive_v for_o themselves_o much_o less_o before_o other_o such_o prayer_n or_o praise_n as_o be_v proper_a for_o their_o occasion_n and_o fit_a to_o be_v offer_v in_o decency_n and_o honour_n to_o so_o great_a and_o wise_a a_o majesty_n as_o god_n be_v and_o this_o consider_v if_o prayer_n of_o other_o godly_a man_n nay_o of_o a_o whole_a church_n compose_v must_v not_o be_v use_v do_v it_o not_o necessary_o follow_v that_o this_o principal_a of_o all_o christian_a of_o all_o natural_a duty_n must_v suffer_v if_o not_o a_o total_a neglect_n at_o leastwise_o that_o it_o must_v be_v very_o indecent_o and_o rude_o perform_v and_o in_o too_o familiar_a a_o manner_n with_o god_n as_o be_v too_o usual_a why_o woeful_a experience_n do_v plain_o show_v we_o that_o for_o this_o very_a reason_n it_o do_v and_o therefore_o devotion_n by_o this_o latter_a mean_n satan_n have_v utter_o defeat_v those_o excellent_a help_n we_o have_v in_o our_o church_n and_o bring_v in_o a_o great_a neglect_n of_o public_a family_n and_o private_a devotion_n though_o no_o church_n through_o the_o care_n of_o its_o pious_a bishop_n and_o pastor_n do_v ever_o abound_v with_o more_o excellent_a form_n and_o help_n and_o those_o better_o fit_v for_o public_a family_n and_o private_a devotion_n than_o our_o church_n do_v at_o this_o day_n yet_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o man_n prejudices_fw-la which_o they_o have_v be_v teach_v to_o entertain_v against_o form_n of_o prayer_n as_o not_o lawful_a or_o not_o expedient_a or_o not_o spiritual_a enough_o never_o do_v person_n so_o sad_o profane_v the_o worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n so_o heartles_o join_v in_o the_o common-prayer_n so_o scandalous_o throw_v aside_o family_n religion_n and_o so_o universal_o i_o fear_v neglect_v private_a devotion_n as_o now_o they_o do_v i_o fear_v that_o those_o who_o so_o zealous_o decry_v form_n of_o prayer_n and_o that_o on_o purpose_n to_o advance_v in_o its_o stead_n a_o more_o spiritual_a way_n of_o worship_n as_o they_o think_v will_v take_v it_o ill_o that_o
and_o now_o in_o order_n to_o the_o countermine_v and_o defeat_v this_o mischievous_a work_n of_o he_o first_o have_v show_v you_o by_o what_o temptation_n and_o mean_n he_o overthrow_v the_o whole_a race_n of_o mankind_n and_o draw_v it_o off_o from_o obedience_n to_o god_n to_o do_v service_n to_o he_o and_o second_o have_v also_o lay_v before_o you_o such_o temptation_n as_o he_o level_n against_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o true_a servant_n of_o god_n either_o utter_o to_o destroy_v they_o or_o to_o corrupt_v their_o religion_n that_o by_o that_o they_o may_v dishonour_v their_o maker_n three_o i_o be_o now_o to_o show_v you_o church_n iii_o satan_n great_a industry_n be_v to_o gain_v over_o to_o his_o party_n or_o to_o tempt_v to_o some_o scandalous_a enormity_n such_o person_n as_o be_v more_o than_o ordinary_o eminent_a for_o their_o rank_n their_o order_n or_o their_o piety_n in_o the_o church_n that_o next_o to_o his_o destroy_a and_o pervert_v of_o whole_a church_n his_o great_a industry_n be_v to_o gain_v over_o to_o his_o party_n or_o to_o tempt_v to_o some_o grievous_a and_o scandalous_a enormity_n such_o person_n as_o be_v more_o than_o ordinary_o eminent_a for_o their_o rank_n or_o quality_n their_o order_n or_o their_o piety_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o quality_n and_o first_o such_o as_o be_v most_o eminent_a for_o their_o station_n or_o quality_n first_o such_o as_o be_v most_o eminent_a for_o their_o station_n or_o quality_n hence_o elymas_n the_o sorcerer_n that_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n apply_v himself_o so_o diligent_o to_o sergius_n paulus_n a_o deputy_n and_o great_a man_n in_o his_o country_n to_o turn_v he_o from_o the_o faith_n act_v 13.7_o 8._o and_o hence_o as_o in_o that_o long_a catalogue_n of_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n and_o israel_n how_o few_o be_v there_o who_o be_v not_o idolater_n and_o high_o infamous_a for_o some_o high_a abomination_n or_o other_o so_o since_o the_o world_n become_v christian_n how_o many_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v there_o who_o have_v commit_v fornication_n that_o be_v idolatry_n with_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n and_o live_v delicious_o with_o she_o and_o how_o will_v both_o they_o and_o the_o merchant_n of_o the_o earth_n weep_v and_o mourn_v over_o she_o when_o her_o calamity_n come_v upon_o she_o rev._n 18.9.11_o it_o be_v astonish_v to_o consider_v how_o that_o so_o many_o of_o the_o honourable_a and_o the_o rich_a who_o of_o all_o man_n live_v be_v oblige_v to_o be_v grateful_a to_o god_n for_o so_o many_o extraordinary_a favour_n and_o blessing_n which_o they_o enjoy_v above_o other_o man_n shall_v yet_o carry_v it_o so_o insolent_o against_o their_o great_a benefactor_n lift_v up_o their_o head_n above_o the_o heaven_n party_n such_o man_n wickedness_n not_o altogether_o from_o the_o temptingness_n of_o riches_n but_o the_o industry_n of_o satan_n to_o get_v over_o such_o lead_a man_n to_o his_o party_n as_o it_o be_v trample_v under_o foot_n all_o law_n both_o divine_a and_o humane_a and_o both_o in_o word_n and_o deed_n deny_v and_o disow_v any_o power_n above_o '_o they_o why_o this_o be_v not_o altogether_o from_o the_o temptingness_n of_o greatness_n and_o riches_n which_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v be_v alone_o a_o very_a considerable_a temptation_n but_o also_o from_o satan_n more_o than_o ordinary_a industry_n to_o gain_v over_o to_o his_o party_n and_o interest_n such_o man_n above_o all_o other_o for_o why_o these_o be_v general_n and_o great_a officer_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o church_n militant_a and_o these_o therefore_o if_o they_o can_v be_v but_o prevail_v upon_o to_o revolt_n from_o god_n all_o the_o herd_n of_o mankind_n beside_o will_n in_o a_o manner_n follow_v of_o course_n conspicuous_a such_o man_n example_n if_o bad_a of_o malignant_a influence_n because_o conspicuous_a there_o be_v indeed_o satan_n do_v very_o well_o know_v it_o nothing_o that_o have_v a_o more_o malignant_a influence_n upon_o the_o life_n and_o manner_n of_o man_n than_o the_o lewd_a and_o profligate_v course_n of_o those_o who_o be_v eminent_a in_o quality_n or_o power_n their_o example_n be_v doubtless_o of_o vast_a importance_n as_o in_o this_o world_n they_o live_v in_o a_o crowd_n all_o their_o life_n so_o they_o pass_v not_o into_o the_o other_o without_o a_o train_n of_o follower_n at_o their_o heel_n if_o their_o example_n be_v extraordinary_o good_a they_o bring_v many_o to_o heaven_n along_o with_o they_o if_o they_o have_v be_v vicious_a and_o naughty_a whole_a troop_n follow_v to_o hell_n after_o they_o for_o subject_n child_n servant_n dependent_n all_o take_v after_o their_o lord_n and_o master_n except_o it_o be_v very_o rare_o because_o and_o will_v bring_v upon_o they_o the_o gild_n not_o only_o of_o their_o own_o but_o of_o other_o man_n sin_n because_o so_o that_o those_o who_o abound_v either_o in_o wealth_n or_o honour_n and_o do_v therefore_o think_v they_o have_v a_o great_a privilege_n to_o sin_n than_o other_o because_o they_o have_v great_a temptation_n to_o it_o than_o other_o man_n be_v miserable_o mistake_v for_o as_o their_o life_n be_v public_a and_o conspicuous_a lie_v more_o open_a to_o the_o observation_n and_o imitation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o do_v cause_n more_o to_o sin_n so_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v their_o own_o only_a but_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o so_o far_o as_o they_o have_v influence_v they_o to_o to_o answer_v for_o and_o the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v this_o the_o action_n of_o great_a man_n have_v some_o force_n of_o a_o precept_n with_o they_o as_o well_o as_o of_o a_o pattern_n of_o their_o action_n have_v the_o force_n of_o a_o precept_n as_o well_o as_o of_o a_o pattern_n which_o inferior_n be_v afraid_a to_o show_v their_o dislike_n of_o for_o as_o one_o well_o observe_v those_o who_o be_v much_o eye_v can_v sin_v single_o both_o because_o man_n of_o weak_a mind_n and_o less_o consideration_n look_v upon_o they_o as_o the_o great_a master_n of_o knowledge_n and_o bravery_n and_o therefore_o strive_v to_o imitate_v and_o be_v like_o they_o and_o also_o because_o they_o have_v many_o dependent_n that_o hope_v to_o receive_v something_o from_o they_o and_o to_o be_v some_o way_n better_v by_o they_o and_o this_o they_o can_v hope_v to_o be_v except_o they_o copy_n out_o their_o example_n and_o show_v their_o love_n and_o honour_n or_o rather_o flattery_n to_o they_o in_o endeavour_v what_o they_o can_v to_o be_v like_o they_o and_o therefore_o we_o do_v common_o see_v the_o generality_n upon_o any_o change_n be_v ready_a to_o take_v up_o with_o the_o religion_n or_o transcribe_v the_o pattern_n and_o ape_n the_o action_n and_o vice_n of_o their_o prince_n or_o other_o governor_n and_o their_o fault_n as_o well_o as_o habit_n shall_v become_v the_o fashion_n of_o their_o country_n so_o that_o a_o unholy_a prince_n shall_v seldom_o have_v a_o religious_a people_n a_o debauch_a nobility_n and_o gentry_n a_o devout_a and_o orderly_a neighbourhood_n and_o family_n a_o wicked_a father_n pious_a child_n or_o a_o evil_a master_n good_a servant_n but_o their_o action_n have_v the_o force_n not_o only_o of_o a_o pattern_n but_o also_o of_o a_o rule_n and_o law_n which_o inferior_n and_o dependent_n be_v afraid_a to_o go_v against_o so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v wonder_v that_o the_o devil_n shall_v be_v more_o than_o ordinary_o industrious_a to_o gain_v over_o to_o his_o party_n such_o as_o be_v most_o eminent_a for_o their_o station_n and_o quality_n one_o such_o tall_a cedar_n sweep_v away_o with_o he_o in_o his_o fall_n all_o the_o low_a shrub_n within_o the_o reach_n of_o its_o branch_n but_o than_o it_o do_v infinite_o concern_v person_n of_o quality_n satan_n great_a man_n therefore_o must_v of_o all_o other_o renounce_v the_o temptation_n of_o satan_n of_o all_o man_n live_v utter_o to_o renounce_v the_o way_n of_o sin_n because_o their_o ill_a example_n be_v of_o such_o bad_a and_o malignant_a influence_n upon_o other_o and_o they_o shall_v renounce_v all_o the_o way_n of_o scandalous_a and_o notorious_a ill_a live_n as_o they_o be_v influential_a upon_o other_o not_o only_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o other_o man_n but_o also_o for_o their_o own_o dear_a sake_n for_o alas_o if_o a_o man_n be_v own_o single_a sin_n unrepented_a of_o will_v plunge_v he_o into_o the_o lake_n of_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n how_o deep_o into_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n must_v they_o sink_v who_o have_v beside_o their_o own_o personal_a transgression_n the_o sin_n of_o many_o other_o press_v they_o downward_o and_o load_v they_o with_o all_o the_o curse_n of_o hell_n for_o the_o ill_a example_n and_o other_o motive_n to_o wickedness_n which_o they_o give_v '_o they_o so_o that_o it_o concern_v the_o great_a one_o of_o all_o other_o to_o look_v to_o
give_v to_o profuse_a live_n then_o he_o be_v covetous_a be_v he_o conscientious_a in_o maintain_v the_o due_n of_o his_o church_n and_o will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v lose_v or_o invade_v by_o the_o sacrilege_n of_o covetous_a worldling_n then_o he_o be_v litigious_a and_o give_v to_o law_n he_o be_v covetous_a and_o what_o not_o so_o exceed_v industrious_a be_v satan_n and_o his_o agent_n to_o blacken_v the_o reputation_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o true_a religion_n i_o say_v of_o true_a religion_n for_o you_o may_v always_o observe_v with_o what_o industry_n the_o real_a vice_n of_o those_o who_o be_v minister_n in_o heresy_n and_o schism_n be_v keep_v secret_a and_o the_o only_a reason_n thereof_o be_v this_o to_o lessen_v the_o authority_n of_o their_o precept_n and_o example_n in_o the_o world_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o do_v that_o good_a that_o otherwise_o they_o may_v it_o do_v in_o truth_n so_o exceed_o concern_v the_o interest_n of_o christianity_n that_o the_o reputation_n of_o its_o minister_n shall_v be_v preserve_v unfully_v unfully_v it_o wonderful_o concern_v the_o interest_n of_o religion_n that_o the_o reputation_n of_o its_o minister_n be_v keep_v unfully_v and_o so_o injurious_a to_o religion_n itself_o be_v the_o defamation_n of_o such_o person_n that_o st._n paul_n be_v careful_a to_o warn_v timothy_n that_o against_o a_o elder_a that_o be_v against_o a_o minister_n he_o shall_v not_o receive_v a_o accusation_n under_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n 1_o tim._n 5.19_o though_o a_o single_a evidence_n that_o be_v credible_a be_v sufficient_a against_o any_o other_o person_n but_o so_o much_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v to_o the_o advancement_n of_o satan_n kingdom_n it_o hence_o satan_n and_o satanical_a man_n so_o industrious_a to_o blast_v it_o and_o so_o satanical_o be_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n dispose_v that_o a_o vilify_a story_n or_o a_o scandalous_a report_n against_o they_o be_v more_o ready_o invent_v more_o easy_o hear_v and_o soon_o believe_v nay_o without_o any_o ground_n at_o all_o surmised_a than_o against_o any_o other_o person_n whatsoever_o but_o let_v i_o tell_v you_o that_o no_o good_a christian_n that_o desire_v the_o destruction_n of_o satan_n and_o the_o advancement_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n will_v be_v forward_o to_o hear_v much_o less_o to_o believe_v and_o propagate_v defamation_n of_o the_o clergy_n as_o know_v it_o be_v the_o policy_n of_o satan_n to_o put_v it_o into_o the_o heart_n of_o uncharitable_a spirit_n to_o surmise_v and_o raise_v and_o aggravate_v little_a vilify_a story_n of_o those_o in_o holy_a order_n as_o of_o some_o indiscretion_n commit_v this_o to_o make_v they_o cheap_a and_o more_o scandalous_a and_o false_a report_n of_o debauchery_n and_o immorality_n to_o render_v they_o odious_a in_o the_o world_n and_o both_o on_o purpose_n to_o render_v their_o labour_n and_o endeavour_n useless_a and_o ineffectual_a to_o the_o reformation_n and_o amendment_n thereof_o in_o short_a satan_n matter_n it_o not_o so_o much_o whether_o by_o real_a sin_n or_o by_o slanderous_a report_n he_o lessen_v the_o authority_n and_o influence_n of_o the_o clergy_n sin_n and_o slanderous_a report_n lessen_v the_o authority_n and_o influence_n of_o the_o clergy_n almost_o as_o much_o as_o real_a sin_n his_o avow_v enemy_n who_o peculiar_a business_n it_o be_v to_o destroy_v his_o usurp_v dominion_n and_o to_o propagate_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n in_o the_o world_n by_o real_a sin_n indeed_o he_o will_v rather_o choose_v if_o he_o can_v and_o do_v therefore_o main_o endeavour_v to_o have_v the_o clergy_n blemish_v but_o mere_o by_o raise_v the_o scandal_n be_v it_o as_o well_o false_a as_o true_a he_o gain_v his_o end_n according_a to_o machiavelli_n his_o great_a secretary_n maxim_n fortiter_fw-la accusare_fw-la &_o aliquid_fw-la adherebit_fw-la throw_v dirt_n upon_o a_o man_n and_o the_o stain_n will_v in_o some_o measure_n stick_v such_o be_v the_o censorious_a humour_n of_o the_o world_n as_o to_o think_v there_o must_v be_v something_o in_o it_o when_o a_o slander_n be_v broach_v and_o so_o malicious_o be_v wicked_a man_n bend_v against_o the_o minister_n of_o religion_n especial_o as_o greedy_o to_o swallow_v every_o thing_n that_o tend_v to_o lessen_v their_o reputation_n in_o a_o word_n by_o both_o he_o gain_v his_o end_n which_o be_v to_o have_v religion_n itself_o wound_v through_o the_o side_n of_o its_o minister_n and_o whether_o any_o of_o they_o shall_v real_o miscarry_v or_o be_v false_o defame_a for_o so_o do_v he_o know_v the_o world_n upon_o either_o account_n will_v abhor_v the_o offering_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o even_o a_o mere_a slander_n will_v be_v such_o a_o stumble_a block_n to_o many_o as_o to_o make_v the_o lord_n people_n to_o transgress_v evil._n it_o behoove_v the_o clergy_n therefore_o so_o far_o to_o renounce_v and_o resist_v the_o devil_n temptation_n as_o to_o take_v care_n not_o only_o to_o be_v real_o blameless_a but_o also_o to_o abstain_v from_o all_o appearance_n of_o evil._n and_o this_o be_v so_o since_o it_o be_v so_o much_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o devil_n kingdom_n to_o have_v we_o ensnare_v by_o his_o temptation_n for_o which_o reason_n he_o do_v therefore_o ply_v we_o especial_o and_o since_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o world_n be_v so_o satanical_o dispose_v as_o easy_o to_o receive_v the_o worst_a impression_n of_o we_o it_o concern_v we_o therefore_o of_o every_o order_n to_o follow_v these_o excellent_a direction_n give_v by_o the_o apostle_n more_o immediate_o to_o the_o high_a 1_o tim._n 3.2_o 3_o 4.6_o 7._o and_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n therefore_o that_o we_o be_v blameless_a vigilant_a sober_a of_o good_a behaviour_n apt_a to_o teach_v not_o give_v to_o wine_n no_o striker_n not_o greedy_a of_o filthy_a lucre_n but_o patient_n not_o brawler_n not_o covetous_a but_o such_o as_o rule_v well_o our_o own_o house_n have_v our_o child_n in_o subjection_n with_o all_o gravity_n not_o novice_n lest_o be_v lift_v up_o with_o pride_n we_o fall_v into_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o moreover_o it_o concern_v the_o interest_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n that_o we_o have_v a_o good_a report_n of_o those_o who_o be_v without_o lest_o we_o fall_v into_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o in_o a_o word_n of_o all_o other_o we_o must_v therefore_o take_v care_n not_o only_o to_o be_v real_o blameless_a but_o also_o to_o abstain_v from_o all_o appearance_n of_o evil_a 1_o thes_n 5.22_o fall_n iii_o such_o as_o be_v of_o signal_n for_o their_o extraordinary_a piety_n &_o virtue_n good_a man_n the_o devil_n know_v will_v be_v scandalize_v at_o such_o a_o one_o be_v fall_n last_o the_o devil_n be_v most_o incessant_o buisy_v to_o tempt_v to_o the_o commission_n of_o some_o scandalous_a enormity_n any_o person_n indifferent_o who_o be_v more_o than_o ordinary_o holy_a satan_n exact_o know_v the_o temper_n of_o the_o world_n that_o if_o such_o a_o person_n chance_v to_o fall_v at_o any_o time_n into_o some_o notorious_a sin_n though_o he_o sudden_o rise_v again_o by_o repentance_n those_o who_o be_v good_a will_v be_v mighty_o scandalize_v and_o offend_v thereat_o and_o will_v be_v apt_a to_o despair_v of_o themselves_o when_o they_o see_v one_o so_o much_o beyond_o they_o in_o piety_n fall_v before_o they_o that_o the_o less_o serious_a and_o loose_a sort_n of_o people_n will_v rejoice_v to_o see_v a_o good_a man_n trip_v because_o this_o they_o think_v will_v countenance_v they_o in_o their_o impiety_n and_o vicious_a course_n of_o live_v and_o as_o for_o the_o atheistical_a and_o debauch_a people_n of_o the_o world_n etc._n and_o the_o atheistical_a will_v triumph_v therein_o and_o withal_o the_o lapse_v person_n will_v be_v render_v almost_o incapable_a ever_o after_o etc._n etc._n that_o they_o will_v triumph_v in_o it_o and_o cry_v down_o all_o religion_n for_o hypocrisy_n when_o they_o see_v its_o great_a example_n commit_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v ill_a this_o the_o devil_n know_v very_o well_o and_o withal_o that_o after_o such_o a_o fall_n the_o lapse_v person_n shall_v be_v render_v almost_o incapable_a ever_o after_o of_o convert_v other_o by_o his_o example_n or_o exhortation_n for_o as_o to_o his_o example_n though_o he_o repent_v never_o so_o hearty_o and_o recover_v his_o former_a state_n with_o advantage_n yet_o it_o will_v be_v a_o continual_a blot_n in_o his_o scutcheon_n that_o he_o do_v so_o and_o so_o like_o that_o except_v the_o matter_n of_o vriah_n be_v in_o david_n and_o as_o for_o his_o exhortation_n let_v he_o be_v who_o he_o will_v whether_o minister_n magistrate_n parent_n or_o master_n that_o go_v about_o to_o reprove_v and_o admonish_v other_o the_o criminal_a instead_o of_o be_v convince_v and_o better_v thereby_o will_v present_o return_v upon_o he_o in_o thought_n at_o
undoubted_o the_o way_n of_o satan_n whereas_o in_o truth_n both_o their_o former_a ill_a practice_n and_o their_o present_a evil_a temper_n and_o principle_n be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o same_o father_n though_o unlike_a to_o one_o another_o in_o outward_a feature_n so_o fatal_a a_o delusion_n it_o be_v of_o the_o devil_n be_v to_o allow_v sinner_n in_o perform_v a_o kind_n of_o partial_a obedience_n to_o god_n nay_o too_o further_o they_o perhaps_o in_o the_o throw_n off_o some_o sensual_a and_o gross_o scandalous_a course_n that_o he_o may_v more_o secure_o detain_v they_o servant_n and_o slave_n to_o himself_o in_o the_o less_o discernible_a sin_n of_o spiritual_a wickedness_n second_o another_o usual_a policy_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v in_o corrupt_v of_o our_o manner_n be_v to_o put_v plausible_a name_n upon_o the_o worst_a sin_n and_o under_o that_o disguise_n to_o cheat_v person_n into_o a_o good_a opinion_n of_o they_o and_o then_o to_o commit_v '_o they_o they_o ii_o by_o put_v plausible_a name_n upon_o the_o worst_a of_o sin_n under_o that_o disguise_n he_o do_v cheat_v person_n into_o a_o good_a opinion_n of_o they_o and_o then_o to_o commit_v '_o they_o and_o he_o have_v the_o impudence_n to_o tempt_v even_o our_o saviour_n himself_o in_o this_o manner_n he_o will_v have_v have_v he_o to_o throw_v himself_o headlong_o from_o the_o pinnacle_n of_o the_o temple_n allege_v that_o god_n will_v give_v his_o angel_n charge_v concern_v he_o and_o in_o their_o hand_n they_o shall_v bear_v he_o up_o matth._n 4.6_o and_o this_o no_o doubt_n he_o will_v have_v he_o believe_v be_v a_o trust_v in_o god_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n by_o a_o satanical_a device_n the_o presumption_n of_o some_o that_o they_o be_v the_o elect_n be_v call_v their_o faith_n by_o which_o they_o shall_v be_v justify_v riot_v and_o drunkenness_n be_v call_v good_a fellowship_n and_o to_o be_v easy_o withdraw_v into_o it_o the_o effect_n of_o good_a nature_n covetousness_n gripe_a and_o extortion_n be_v term_v a_o provide_v for_o one_o own_n which_o he_o that_o do_v not_o do_v be_v worse_a than_o a_o infidel_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a to_o be_v prodigal_a and_o profuse_a be_v to_o be_v hospitable_a and_o charitable_a spite_n malice_n and_o revenge_n be_v call_v a_o hate_v of_o other_o man_n sin_n and_o the_o most_o bitter_a and_o fierce_a contention_n nay_o the_o most_o cruel_a and_o bloody_a persecution_n a_o zeal_n for_o god_n and_o true_a religion_n and_o when_o that_o temper_n be_v just_o expose_v to_o hatred_n and_o abhorrence_n than_o a_o lukewarmness_n and_o a_o mere_a indifferency_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n whether_o truth_n or_o heresy_n prevail_v gallio_n care_v for_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n be_v style_v the_o calm_a and_o sweet_a temper_n and_o spirit_n of_o the_o gospel_n thus_o do_v sin_n pass_v in_o the_o world_n current_o under_o the_o mask_n of_o virtue_n vice_n appear_v in_o its_o own_o colour_n be_v so_o odious_a a_o thing_n that_o no_o one_o but_o must_v be_v ashamed_a to_o own_v it_o men._n sin_n in_o that_o disguise_n get_v reputation_n among_o men._n but_o be_v adorn_v by_o the_o cunning_a of_o satan_n with_o title_n of_o respect_n and_o in_o the_o show_v of_o virtue_n it_o be_v look_v upon_o with_o no_o evil_a eye_n but_o get_v approbation_n and_o reputation_n among_o men._n but_o the_o devil_n get_v a_o passport_n for_o several_a sin_n into_o the_o world_n not_o only_o by_o give_v they_o the_o name_n of_o virtue_n but_o three_o by_o change_v the_o nature_n of_o several_a divine_a grace_n and_o virtue_n so_o that_o they_o degenerate_a into_o very_o great_a sin_n sin_n iii_o by_o change_v the_o nature_n of_o several_a divine_a grace_n so_o that_o they_o degenerateinto_o very_o great_a sin_n it_o be_v much_o the_o devil_n policy_n to_o transport_v person_n out_o of_o that_o moderation_n wherein_o virtue_n do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n consist_v into_o that_o excess_n which_o much_o resemble_v it_o but_o be_v real_o exceed_o sinful_a and_o hurtful_a to_o man_n soul_n this_o we_o gather_v to_o be_v the_o devil_n policy_n from_o 2_o cor._n 2.11_o where_o the_o apostle_n advise_v the_o corinthian_n to_o forgive_v at_o the_o last_o that_o incestuous_a person_n among_o they_o who_o they_o have_v deserve_o excommunicate_v and_o to_o receive_v he_o to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n be_v he_o have_v humble_v himself_o and_o repent_v and_o that_o mercy_n he_o will_v have_v they_o show_v he_o lest_o satan_n shall_v get_v a_o advantage_n over_o they_o for_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o his_o device_n say_v he_o that_o be_v lest_o the_o too_o long_a continuance_n of_o the_o punishment_n they_o inflict_v upon_o the_o penitent_a offender_n may_v be_v make_v use_n of_o by_o satan_n to_o the_o hurt_n and_o ruin_n of_o the_o church_n by_o hightning_n their_o zeal_n against_o sin_n into_o a_o irreconcilableness_n to_o the_o sinner_n and_o indeed_o there_o be_v many_o sin_n and_o virtue_n so_o near_o in_o their_o nature_n that_o the_o passage_n from_o one_o to_o the_o other_o be_v hardly_o discernible_a insomuch_o that_o by_o the_o art_n of_o satan_n we_o easy_o slide_v from_o one_o to_o the_o other_o as_o obstinacy_n in_o stand_v out_o against_o all_o conviction_n concern_v the_o truth_n be_v easy_o mistake_v for_o constancy_n in_o the_o faith_n and_o the_o love_n of_o our-selve_n for_o the_o love_n of_o god_n but_o especial_o that_o zeal_n for_o god_n glory_n now_o mention_v a_o most_o excellent_a grace_n in_o itself_o be_v often_o and_o that_o easy_o transport_v into_o cruelty_n as_o we_o see_v it_o be_v in_o st._n paul_n who_o out_o of_o a_o zeal_n for_o the_o law_n beyond_o measure_n persecute_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o waste_v it_o gal._n 1.13_o thus_o by_o change_v the_o nature_n of_o several_a divine_a grace_n and_o virtue_n so_o that_o they_o become_v very_o great_a sin_n do_v satan_n easy_o betray_v we_o into_o they_o and_o what_o be_v worse_o sin_n thus_o mistake_v for_o virtue_n be_v hardly_o ever_o afterward_o repent_v of_o of_o sin_n thus_o mistake_v be_v seldom_o repent_v of_o for_o whereas_o sin_n when_o it_o appear_v barefaced_a and_o in_o its_o own_o colour_n and_o be_v know_v to_o be_v so_o be_v a_o ugly_a monster_n and_o be_v no_o soon_o commit_v but_o it_o scare_n the_o conscience_n into_o grief_n anguish_n and_o repentance_n when_o it_o be_v thus_o mistake_v for_o real_a and_o true_a virtue_n it_o be_v not_o only_o secure_o and_o without_o the_o least_o reluctancy_n and_o remorse_n commit_v but_o be_v confident_o glorify_v in_o and_o the_o sinner_n grow_v proud_a of_o those_o villainous_a practice_n for_o which_o he_o ought_v to_o humble_v himself_o in_o sackcloth_n and_o ash_n four_o it_o be_v a_o most_o destructive_a policy_n of_o satan_n to_o put_v new_a beginner_n in_o the_o spiritual_a life_n upon_o great_a severity_n and_o strictness_n in_o religion_n than_o they_o be_v capable_a of_o on_o purpose_n that_o when_o they_o gro●_n weary_a thereof_o and_o can_v go_v through_o with_o they_o may_v together_o with_o those_o their_o voluntary_a severity_n throw_v all_o religion_n aside_o as_o too_o burdensome_a and_o not_o at_o all_o practicable_a practicable_a iv_o by_o put_v novice_n upon_o undertake_v severity_n great_a than_o they_o can_v go_v through_o with_o on_o design_n that_o when_o they_o grow_v weary_a thereof_o they_o may_v together_o with_o those_o their_o voluntary_a severity_n throw_v all_o religion_n aside_o as_o too_o burdensome_a and_o not_o at_o all_o practicable_a this_o we_o gather_v to_o be_v a_o policy_n of_o satan_n from_o that_o prudent_a advice_n of_o st._n paul_n 1_o cor._n 7.5_o which_o he_o give_v to_o marry_v people_n that_o except_o it_o be_v with_o consent_n for_o a_o time_n that_o they_o may_v give_v themselves_o to_o fast_v and_o prayer_n they_o shall_v not_o prescribe_v to_o themselves_o too_o long_a abstinence_n from_o one_o another_o lest_o satan_n shall_v tempt_v they_o for_o their_o incontinency_n so_o we_o translate_v it_o but_o the_o word_n in_o the_o original_a signify_v want_v of_o ability_n to_o contain_v or_o abstain_v which_o inability_n or_o weakness_n to_o go_v through_o any_o voluntary_a and_o undertake_v piece_n of_o discipline_n be_v a_o occasion_n of_o temptation_n and_o will_v be_v a_o advantage_n to_o the_o tempter_n by_o which_o when_o he_o do_v at_o any_o time_n attempt_v such_o a_o person_n he_o may_v probable_o enough_o overcome_v which_o inability_n or_o weakness_n i_o say_v to_o go_v through_o any_o voluntary_a and_o undertake_v piece_n of_o discipline_n as_o of_o long_a fast_n and_o watch_n at_o such_o set_a hour_n of_o the_o night_n or_o the_o performance_n of_o certain_a vow_n which_o some_o do_v lay_v upon_o themselves_o these_o though_o they_o may_v be_v serviceable_a to_o promote_v a_o spiritual_a life_n if_o
our_o way_n to_o heaven_n and_o happiness_n allowable_a happiness_n so_o long_o as_o we_o wear_v these_o earthly_a body_n about_o we_o we_o be_v permit_v the_o use_n and_o enjoyment_n of_o worldly_a thing_n provide_v in_o thing_n lawful_a and_o in_o degree_n allowable_a so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v in_o this_o world_n and_o be_v part_n of_o it_o ourselves_o and_o carry_v these_o body_n of_o earthly_a material_n about_o we_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o and_o we_o be_v permit_v to_o be_v concern_v in_o it_o and_o we_o may_v without_o scruple_n gratify_v ourselves_o with_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o it_o provide_v it_o be_v in_o thing_n lawful_a and_o in_o degree_n allowable_a and_o that_o we_o suffer_v not_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n to_o be_v too_o much_o fix_v upon_o it_o but_o in_o regard_v our_o soul_n the_o principal_a part_n of_o we_o by_o far_o be_v the_o native_n of_o heaven_n and_o be_v only_o as_o pilgrim_n and_o tenant_n here_o below_o to_o stay_v but_o for_o a_o short_a time_n for_o as_o the_o dust_n shall_v return_v to_o the_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v so_o the_o spirit_n shall_v return_v to_o god_n they_o but_o be_v our_o soul_n our_o principal_a part_n be_v soon_o to_o remove_v to_o heaven_n we_o must_v chief_o set_v our_o affection_n on_o thing_n above_o and_o main_o endeavour_v to_o attain_v they_o who_o give_v it_o eccl._n 12.7_o we_o must_v therefore_o set_v our_o affection_n chief_o on_o thing_n above_o on_o god_n the_o society_n interest_n and_o enjoyment_n of_o that_o everblessed_n state_n make_v it_o our_o main_a business_n to_o possess_v to_o attain_v and_o enjoy_v they_o and_o not_o on_o thing_n below_o the_o foolish_a interest_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o this_o perish_a and_o transitory_a state_n here_o on_o earth_n col._n 3.2_o and_o so_o far_o as_o the_o world_n or_o any_o thing_n it_o inveigle_v our_o heart_n and_o affection_n to_o fix_v upon_o it_o and_o seduce_v we_o to_o commit_v any_o thing_n sinful_a and_o hinder_v to_o mind_v the_o business_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o performance_n of_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n our_o way_n to_o happiness_n and_o everlasting_a satisfaction_n it_o be_v to_o be_v renounce_v reject_v and_o overcome_v by_o we_o it_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o a_o christian_n warfare_n and_o the_o subject_n of_o his_o victory_n and_o so_o far_o as_o this_o whatsoever_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n overcome_v the_o world_n 1_o joh._n 5.4_o and_o in_o this_o sense_n st._n paul_n profess_v gal._n 6.14_o that_o the_o world_n be_v crucify_a unto_o he_o and_o he_o unto_o the_o world_n and_o thus_o you_o see_v in_o general_n in_o what_o sense_n and_o how_o far_o we_o be_v to_o renounce_v the_o world_n but_o second_o thereof_o ii_o concern_v the_o world_n consider_v in_o its_o particular_n &_o those_o temptation_n result_v both_o from_o the_o good_a and_o the_o evil_n thereof_o for_o the_o more_o full_a and_o complete_a explication_n of_o this_o point_n of_o renounce_v the_o world_n it_o be_v a_o matter_n wherein_o it_o concern_v you_o to_o receive_v the_o most_o distinct_a direction_n i_o will_v far_o consider_v the_o particular_n of_o which_o this_o world_n be_v make_v up_o and_o will_v also_o show_v you_o in_o what_o sense_n and_o how_o far_o you_o be_v to_o renounce_v each_o of_o '_o they_o and_o here_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o when_o we_o come_v to_o take_v a_o near_a view_n of_o the_o world_n in_o its_o particular_n it_o do_v not_o then_o appear_v as_o it_o do_v in_o the_o general_n to_o have_v nothing_o in_o it_o but_o good_a but_o to_o contain_v withal_o a_o great_a mixture_n of_o evil_a and_o indeed_o to_o be_v in_o the_o present_a state_n thereof_o almost_o whole_o make_v up_o of_o vanity_n and_o vexation_n of_o spirit_n and_o both_o the_o good_a and_o the_o evil_a thing_n thereof_o do_v give_v we_o considerable_a temptation_n to_o sin_n now_o the_o good_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n be_v sum_v up_o under_o these_o head_n the_o riches_n honour_n and_o the_o pleasure_n it_o afford_v world_n the_o good_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n riches_n honour_n &_o pleasure_n the_o evil_n poverty_n disgrace_n and_o affliction_n and_o thing_n of_o a_o middle_a nature_n be_v the_o different_a calling_n condition_n and_o care_n of_o this_o world_n and_o its_o evil_n on_o the_o contrary_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o poverty_n disgrace_n and_o those_o affliction_n of_o all_o sort_n which_o in_o innumerable_a way_n do_v assail_v we_o and_o there_o be_v also_o some_o thing_n therein_o of_o a_o middle_a nature_n as_o different_a calling_n condition_n or_o state_n of_o life_n and_o the_o care_n of_o this_o world_n which_o be_v the_o appurtenance_n to_o it_o and_o afford_v great_a matter_n of_o temptation_n and_o trial_n to_o we_o therein_o and_o in_o what_o sense_n and_o how_o far_o you_o be_v to_o renounce_v it_o with_o reference_n to_o each_o of_o these_o i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o show_v you_o and_o first_o as_o to_o the_o riches_n of_o this_o world_n these_o be_v not_o in_o themselves_o hurtful_a purpose_n i._o as_o to_o riches_n these_o be_v not_o in_o themselves_o hurtful_a but_o good_a and_o be_v bestow_v upon_o we_o to_o good_a end_n and_o purpose_n but_o good_a and_o be_v bestow_v by_o the_o divine_a providence_n upon_o those_o that_o have_v they_o to_o very_o excellent_a purpose_n and_o use_v that_o they_o may_v do_v good_a therewith_o and_o that_o not_o only_o in_o provide_v for_o their_o own_o household_n but_o also_o by_o steward_v they_o out_o to_o the_o support_n and_o advancement_n of_o religion_n and_o virtue_n to_o the_o relieve_v the_o poor_a and_o distress_a to_o the_o encouragement_n of_o industry_n and_o in_o many_o other_o way_n which_o the_o law_n of_o piety_n and_o charity_n do_v direct_v soul_n direct_v and_o those_o who_o enjoy_v they_o have_v great_a advantage_n of_o do_v good_a therewith_o to_o other_o comfort_n and_o the_o benefit_n of_o their_o own_o soul_n and_o those_o therefore_o on_o who_o god_n have_v bestow_v wealth_n have_v admirable_a advantage_n put_v into_o their_o hand_n to_o do_v good_a therewith_o to_o the_o comfort_n of_o other_o and_o to_o lay_v up_o to_o themselves_o treasure_n of_o reward_n in_o heaven_n by_o their_o good_a work_n nevertheless_o it_o be_v no_o hard_a censure_n our_o saviour_n pass_v upon_o riches_n in_o say_v that_o a_o rich_a man_n shall_v hardly_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n matth._n 19.23_o for_o both_o scripture_n and_o daily_a experience_n tell_v we_o they_o nevertheless_o riches_n be_v a_o mighty_a temptation_n whether_o we_o consider_v man_n as_o get_v possess_v or_o as_o part_v with_o or_o lose_v of_o they_o that_o riches_n be_v a_o very_a great_a temptation_n to_o manifold_a sin_n and_o offence_n against_o god_n and_o that_o whether_o we_o consider_v man_n with_o respect_n to_o their_o get_v possess_v or_o their_o part_v with_o or_o lose_v of_o they_o first_o consider_v man_n in_o the_o state_n of_o get_v riches_n and_o st._n paul_n tell_v we_o 1_o tim._n 6.9_o that_o they_o who_o will_v be_v rich_a fall_v into_o a_o temptation_n and_o a_o snare_n and_o into_o many_o foolish_a and_o hurtful_a lust_n which_o drown_v man_n in_o destruction_n and_o perdition_n and_o our_o own_o experience_n also_o give_v we_o to_o see_v how_o many_o horrid_a and_o black_a crime_n and_o into_o what_o miserable_a snare_n so_o as_o never_o to_o be_v able_a to_o disentangle_v themselves_o out_o of_o they_o do_v man_n run_v themselves_o into_o by_o a_o over-eager_a pursuit_n of_o riches_n sin_n i._o in_o the_o over-eager_a pursuit_n of_o riches_n man_n do_v run_v themselves_o into_o many_o grievous_a sin_n a_o divide_v betwixt_o god_n and_o mammon_n be_v the_o low_a degree_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v occasion_v hereby_o which_o yet_o god_n will_v not_o endure_v as_o you_o will_v find_v matth._n 6.24_o the_o neglect_n of_o religion_n and_o contempt_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n be_v the_o next_o and_o it_o be_v not_o seldom_o we_o see_v that_o man_n to_o raise_v themselves_o estate_n in_o this_o world_n will_v not_o stick_v at_o oppress_v the_o poor_a at_o cheat_v of_o orphan_n and_o widow_n at_o corrupt_v of_o witness_n and_o jury_n and_o forge_v of_o evidence_n and_o to_o add_v impiety_n to_o injustice_n to_o get_v but_o a_o small_a pittance_n of_o worldly_a wealth_n they_o will_v rob_v god_n in_o his_o tithe_n and_o offering_n by_o sacrilegious_o detain_v those_o due_n which_o be_v allot_v both_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o his_o minister_n a_o sin_n compare_v by_o st._n paul_n with_o idolatry_n itself_o rom._n 2.22_o they_o as_o also_o into_o many_o miserable_a snare_n so_o as_o to_o be_v hardly_o ever_o able_a to_o disentangle_v
from_o the_o faith_n and_o a_o denial_n of_o the_o truth_n our_o bless_a saviour_n tell_v we_o that_o whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o forsake_v not_o whatever_o he_o have_v for_o his_o sake_n and_o the_o gospel_n he_o can_v be_v his_o disciple_n and_o to_o leave_v house_n land_n possession_n and_o whatever_o worldly_a enjoyment_n if_o you_o will_v not_o renounce_v the_o gospel_n itself_o or_o those_o truth_n contain_v therein_o and_o will_v not_o embrace_v error_n contrary_a to_o it_o be_v always_o the_o hard_a condition_n that_o christian_n be_v put_v upon_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n but_o how_o hard_o a_o thing_n be_v it_o for_o a_o rich_a man_n to_o do_v this_o a_o poor_a wretch_n may_v be_v content_a to_o leave_v his_o uncomfortable_a mansion_n and_o to_o resign_v this_o laborious_a tedious_a life_n in_o hope_n of_o gain_v rest_n and_o eternal_a glory_n thereby_o rather_o than_o strain_v his_o conscience_n but_o for_o a_o rich_a man_n to_o take_v a_o farewell_n of_o his_o stately_a house_n delightful_a garden_n his_o silent_a grot_n and_o shady_a walk_n his_o rich_a furniture_n goodly_a farm_n and_o his_o heap_n of_o silver_n to_o leave_v these_o and_o fly_v into_o banishment_n endure_v poverty_n labour_n with_o hunger_n and_o starve_v with_o nakedness_n all_o this_o to_o preserve_v a_o good_a conscience_n it_o be_v a_o hard_a say_v a_o shrewd_a temptation_n he_o will_v be_v apt_a to_o desire_v his_o settlement_n may_v be_v on_o this_o side_n jordan_n rather_o than_o he_o will_v pass_v over_o the_o flood_n into_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n he_o will_v be_v very_o apt_a to_o build_v his_o tabernacle_n on_o this_o side_n heaven_n the_o temptation_n be_v indeed_o great_a and_o many_o have_v fall_v under_o the_o power_n of_o it_o several_n have_v pass_v very_o shrewd_a brush_n in_o their_o way_n towards_o heaven_n and_o yet_o have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o withstand_v the_o shock_n of_o this_o temptation_n we_o have_v a_o famous_a instance_n of_o this_o in_o the_o young_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n matth._n 19_o this_o person_n come_v to_o our_o saviour_n with_o a_o mighty_a desire_n to_o know_v what_o he_o shall_v do_v to_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o reckon_v up_o a_o many_o extraordinary_a act_n that_o he_o have_v do_v already_o in_o order_n to_o it_o insomuch_o that_o in_o another_o gospel_n it_o be_v record_v our_o saviour_n love_v he_o very_o much_o but_o the_o holy_a jesus_n tell_v he_o that_o if_o he_o will_v be_v perfect_a he_o must_v go_v and_o sell_v what_o he_o have_v and_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o he_o shall_v have_v treasure_n in_o heaven_n and_o that_o he_o must_v in_o poverty_n and_o affliction_n come_v and_o follow_v he_o when_o the_o young_a man_n hear_v that_o say_n he_o go_v away_o sorrowful_a for_o he_o have_v great_a possession_n say_v the_o text_n ver_fw-la 22._o and_o thus_o you_o see_v what_o temptation_n riches_n will_v give_v you_o whether_o you_o consider_v yourselves_o as_o get_v as_o possess_v or_o as_o part_v with_o or_o lose_v of_o they_o renounce_v in_o what_o sense_n and_o how_o far_o riches_n be_v to_o be_v renounce_v and_o now_o the_o great_a question_n will_v be_v in_o what_o sense_n and_o how_o far_o you_o must_v renounce_v the_o riches_n of_o this_o world_n in_o all_o these_o respect_n and_o in_o the_o general_n i_o can_v safe_o tell_v you_o that_o riches_n be_v not_o of_o that_o evil_a nature_n in_o themselves_o that_o you_o must_v absolute_o renounce_v or_o reject_v they_o we_o read_v of_o a_o peevish_a philosopher_n they_o in_o general_n be_v they_o be_v not_o evil_a in_o themselves_o they_o be_v in_o case_n only_o to_o be_v renounce_v by_o we_o wherein_o we_o can_v without_o sin_n pursue_v possess_v or_o retain_v they_o among_o the_o grecian_n one_o crates_n who_o throw_v all_o his_o wealth_n into_o the_o sea_n he_o will_v have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o it_o and_o there_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o man_n among_o the_o romanist_n those_o who_o they_o call_v begging-friar_n who_o vow_v poverty_n and_o place_v a_o very_a great_a part_n of_o their_o religion_n in_o that_o very_a sinful_a trade_n if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o very_a great_a necessity_n for_o it_o of_o beg_v but_o riches_n be_v not_o of_o that_o nature_n that_o they_o need_v be_v so_o absolute_o renounce_v and_o reject_v by_o we_o they_o may_v be_v innocent_o enough_o both_o seek_v possess_v and_o retain_v and_o it_o be_v only_o in_o such_o case_n wherein_o you_o can_v without_o sin_n pursue_v possess_v and_o retain_v they_o that_o you_o be_v oblige_v by_o your_o baptismal_a vow_n to_o renounce_v and_o reject_v they_o and_o that_o be_v in_o these_o case_n follow_v and_o first_o as_o to_o the_o get_v of_o riches_n happiness_n as_o first_o riches_n consider_v in_o the_o get_n no_o man_n must_v so_o put_v his_o heart_n upon_o they_o as_o to_o esteem_v they_o his_o chief_a good_a and_o happiness_n you_o must_v not_o set_v your_o heart_n upon_o they_o so_o as_o to_o esteem_v they_o your_o chief_a good_a and_o happiness_n for_o this_o be_v a_o eternal_a and_o a_o unalterable_a rule_n both_o in_o reason_n and_o religion_n that_o the_o chief_a and_o most_o absolute_a good_a deserve_v our_o chief_a esteem_n and_o choice_a affection_n and_o that_o lesser_a good_n to_o be_v less_o esteem_v and_o love_v and_o therefore_o god_n and_o heavenly_a thing_n be_v our_o chief_a good_a and_o the_o riches_n of_o this_o world_n be_v good_a only_o by_o derivation_n from_o he_o and_o that_o in_o infinite_o low_a degree_n we_o must_v by_o no_o mean_n suffer_v the_o riches_n of_o this_o life_n to_o have_v a_o equal_a share_n in_o our_o esteem_n and_o affection_n with_o god_n and_o heavenly_a thing_n no_o mammon_n be_v too_o base_a a_o competitor_n that_o we_o shall_v divide_v the_o empire_n of_o our_o heart_n betwixt_o god_n and_o he_o no_o man_n can_v faithful_o serve_v two_o master_n for_o either_o he_o will_v hate_v the_o one_o and_o love_v the_o other_o or_o else_o he_o will_v hold_v to_o the_o one_o and_o despise_v the_o other_o you_o can_v serve_v god_n and_o mammon_n say_v our_o saviour_n mat._n 6.24_o and_o you_o must_v by_o no_o mean_n labour_n after_o the_o riches_n of_o this_o world_n with_o immoderate_a care_n devotion_n nor_o must_v he_o labour_v after_o they_o with_o immoderate_a care_n so_o as_o to_o neglect_v the_o great_a duty_n of_o religion_n &_o devotion_n so_o as_o to_o neglect_v the_o great_a duty_n of_o religion_n and_o devotion_n martha_n you_o know_v be_v much_o trouble_v about_o her_o household_n affair_n at_o a_o time_n and_o opportunity_n give_v she_o to_o hear_v our_o saviour_n heavenly_a discourse_n and_o divine_a instruction_n and_o our_o saviour_n rebuke_v she_o for_o it_o tell_v she_o that_o mary_n have_v choose_v the_o better_a part_n in_o lay_v aside_o her_o worldly_a business_n to_o attend_v that_o more_o important_a affair_n the_o enrich_v of_o her_o soul_n matth._n 10.41_o 42._o and_o you_o must_v take_v care_n lest_o you_o also_o incur_v that_o and_o a_o worse_a rebuke_n by_o spend_v the_o lord's-day_n set_v apart_o by_o divine_a appointment_n whole_o to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n lest_o you_o spend_v it_o i_o say_v in_o worldly_a business_n and_o in_o project_n of_o gain_n or_o indeed_o any_o day_n in_o immoderate_a carking_n so_o as_o to_o omit_v either_o your_o family_n or_o private_a devotion_n and_o must_v seek_v first_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o his_o righteousness_n and_o all_o these_o other_o thing_n shall_v be_v add_v unto_o you_o in_o such_o measure_n as_o shall_v be_v needful_a for_o you_o and_o you_o must_v therefore_o after_o lawful_a endeavour_n leave_v the_o success_n to_o god_n take_v no_o further_o thought_n for_o the_o morrow_n matth._n 6.33_o 34._o but_o above_o all_o in_o your_o pursuit_n after_o this_o world_n wealth_n mean_n especial_o he_o must_v beware_v of_o enrich_v himself_o by_o unjust_a mean_n you_o must_v beware_v of_o enrich_v yourselves_o by_o any_o unjust_a mean_n this_o be_v call_v by_o the_o wiseman_n a_o make_n have_v to_o be_v rich_a because_o that_o those_o who_o be_v bend_v upon_o unlawful_a gain_n think_v plain_a and_o honest_a deal_v too_o slow_a a_o way_n of_o increase_a their_o substance_n but_o he_o withal_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o who_o do_v so_o shall_v not_o be_v innocent_a prov._n 28.20_o that_o be_v shall_v involve_v themselves_o in_o great_a and_o terrible_a gild_n as_o have_v be_v show_v you_o and_o let_v i_o tell_v you_o withal_o whenever_o you_o shall_v come_v to_o cast_v up_o your_o account_n between_o god_n and_o your_o own_o soul_n a_o thorn_n will_v not_o prick_v your_o flesh_n with_o half_a that_o anguish_n as_o the_o reflection_n upon_o a_o ill-gotten_a estate_n will_v pierce_v your_o conscience_n so_o that_o above_o all_o thing_n it_o do_v
reasonable_a and_o useful_a it_o be_v in_o itself_o but_o as_o the_o best_a thing_n be_v liable_a to_o the_o worst_a abuse_n renounce_v the_o abuse_v it_o be_v subject_a to_o and_o in_o what_o instance_n to_o be_v renounce_v so_o it_o fare_v with_o this_o sort_n of_o honour_n and_o the_o nobleman_n or_o gentleman_n be_v apt_a to_o think_v himself_o privilege_v above_o other_o to_o trample_v under_o foot_n all_o law_n both_o divine_a and_o humane_a and_o to_o reckon_v himself_o above_o reproof_n or_o punishment_n when_o he_o have_v do_v to_o despise_v and_o oppress_v the_o rest_n of_o mankind_n as_o if_o they_o be_v but_o a_o low_a rank_n of_o creature_n and_o have_v not_o soul_n as_o excellent_a in_o their_o nature_n and_o as_o capable_a of_o improvement_n as_o precious_a in_o god_n sight_n and_o as_o much_o the_o heir_n of_o heaven_n as_o his_o own_o such_o be_v apt_a to_o fly_v at_o the_o great_a distance_n from_o those_o worthy_a virtue_n which_o ennoble_v their_o ancestor_n and_o indeed_o to_o despise_v religion_n and_o its_o chief_a virtue_n as_o quality_n beneath_o '_o they_o but_o first_o a_o nobleman_n or_o gentleman_n be_v he_o of_o what_o rank_n or_o quality_n soever_o must_v utter_o renounce_v all_o that_o honour_n which_o pretend_v to_o put_v he_o above_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o man_n and_o beyond_o reproof_n or_o punishment_n when_o he_o have_v violate_v either_o either_o a_o gentleman_n be_v he_o of_o what_o rank_n or_o quality_n soever_o must_v utter_o renounce_v all_o that_o honour_n which_o pretend_v to_o place_v he_o above_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o man_n and_o beyond_o reproof_n or_o punishment_n when_o he_o have_v violate_v either_o for_o so_o far_o be_v one_o of_o a_o eminent_a quality_n from_o be_v at_o liberty_n to_o be_v a_o atheist_n or_o libertine_n a_o licentious_a and_o a_o lewd_a liver_n a_o breaker_n of_o the_o law_n of_o his_o country_n and_o a_o despiser_n of_o the_o discipline_n and_o order_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o far_o be_v he_o from_o be_v above_o punishment_n or_o reproof_n for_o such_o like_a violation_n that_o he_o be_v bind_v above_o all_o other_o man_n to_o be_v a_o strict_a and_o orderly_a liver_n and_o upon_o his_o failure_n be_v more_o open_a to_o reproof_n and_o more_o liable_a to_o be_v severe_o punish_v such_o a_o one_o be_v place_v upon_o a_o high_a form_n than_o other_o man_n and_o consequent_o his_o deformity_n and_o vice_n be_v more_o open_a to_o public_a view_n and_o more_o easy_o discern_v and_o the_o multitude_n which_o be_v always_o apt_a to_o observe_v the_o fault_n of_o their_o superior_n will_v be_v sure_a to_o pass_v their_o usual_a censure_n how_o unbecoming_a be_v this_o man_n life_n to_o his_o birth_n and_o quality_n and_o how_o do_v he_o disgrace_v himself_o and_o family_n so_o injurious_a be_v he_o to_o himself_o he_o be_v moreover_o by_o the_o eminence_n of_o his_o birth_n and_o quality_n as_o a_o light_n put_v not_o a_o under_o a_o bushel_n but_o on_o a_o candlestick_n and_o so_o the_o world_n who_o be_v always_o apt_a to_o imitate_v the_o manner_n of_o their_o superior_n see_v his_o bad_a example_n will_v many_o of_o they_o copy_n it_o out_o to_o their_o own_o destruction_n so_o mischievous_a be_v such_o a_o one_o among_o men._n and_o last_o he_o have_v receive_v far_o great_a talent_n from_o god_n than_o other_o man_n to_o employ_v to_o his_o glory_n which_o if_o he_o have_v abuse_v to_o his_o dishonour_n he_o be_v ungrateful_a towards_o god_n he_o have_v have_v the_o example_n of_o more_o noble_a progenitor_n before_o his_o eye_n to_o raise_v his_o emulation_n he_o have_v have_v the_o advantage_n of_o a_o better_a education_n to_o improve_v his_o knowledge_n he_o have_v more_o time_n and_o leisure_n to_o pursue_v it_o more_o riches_n to_o procure_v the_o mean_n of_o attain_v it_o he_o have_v more_o authority_n to_o support_v religion_n and_o the_o church_n and_o he_o have_v a_o great_a stock_n of_o reputation_n among_o man_n to_o countenance_n both_o and_o have_v thus_o a_o great_a share_n of_o talent_n to_o employ_v to_o his_o master_n honour_n proportionable_o a_o great_a measure_n of_o improvement_n thereof_o to_o the_o advancement_n of_o god_n glory_n and_o religion_n among_o man_n will_v be_v require_v at_o his_o hand_n for_o unto_o whosoever_o much_o be_v give_v of_o he_o shall_v much_o be_v require_v and_o to_o who_o man_n have_v commit_v much_o of_o he_o they_o will_v ask_v the_o more_o luk._n 12.48_o punish_v such_o a_o one_o be_v bind_v above_o other_o to_o be_v a_o strict_a and_o orderly_a liver_n and_o upon_o his_o failure_n be_v more_o open_a to_o reproof_n and_o more_o liable_a to_o be_v severe_o punish_v and_o now_o do_v any_o man_n think_v when_o he_o have_v so_o much_o abuse_v himself_o and_o family_n when_o his_o example_n have_v be_v so_o mischievous_a and_o infectious_a to_o mankind_n and_o when_o he_o have_v turn_v all_o the_o artillery_n which_o god_n have_v give_v he_o to_o fight_v against_o sin_n and_o the_o devil_n when_o he_o have_v treacherous_o turn_v it_o upon_o god_n himself_o will_v his_o honour_n bear_v he_o out_o in_o this_o or_o do_v he_o think_v himself_o above_o the_o reproof_n of_o god_n minister_n here_o or_o the_o punishment_n of_o a_o incense_v deity_n hereafter_o no_o he_o be_v the_o man_n to_o who_o reproof_n do_v particular_o belong_v and_o according_o herod_n the_o tetrarch_n be_v reprove_v by_o john_n the_o baptist_n for_o herodias_n his_o brother_n philip_n wife_n and_o for_o the_o evil_n which_o herod_n have_v do_v luk._n 3.19_o and_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v such_o a_o one_o above_o all_o man_n will_v be_v beat_v with_o many_o stripe_n luk._n 12.47_o so_o much_o be_v that_o honour_n to_o be_v renounce_v which_o pretend_v to_o put_v a_o man_n above_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o man_n or_o beyond_o reproof_n or_o punishment_n for_o the_o violation_n of_o '_o they_o second_o and_o so_o likewise_o be_v that_o to_o be_v renounce_v and_o detest_a which_o exalt_v person_n above_o their_o brethren_n to_o that_o degree_n as_o to_o despise_v and_o oppress_v the_o rest_n of_o mankind_n as_o if_o they_o be_v but_o a_o low_a rank_n of_o creature_n and_o have_v not_o the_o same_o god_n to_o their_o father_n body_n form_v out_o of_o the_o same_o clay_n and_o soul_n as_o excellent_a in_o their_o nature_n and_o as_o capable_a of_o improvement_n as_o precious_a in_o god_n sight_n and_o as_o much_o the_o heir_n of_o heaven_n as_o their_o own_o own_o as_o also_o that_o which_o exalt_v person_n above_o their_o brethren_n to_o that_o degree_n as_o to_o despise_v and_o oppress_v the_o rest_n of_o mankind_n as_o if_o they_o be_v but_o a_o low_a rank_n of_o creature_n and_o have_v not_o the_o same_o god_n to_o their_o father_n body_n form_v out_o of_o the_o same_o clay_n &_o soul_n as_o excellent_a in_o their_o nature_n and_o as_o capable_a of_o improvement_n as_o precious_a in_o god_n sight_n and_o as_o much_o the_o heir_n of_o heaven_n as_o their_o own_o this_o be_v indeed_o observe_v to_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o property_n of_o those_o only_o of_o upstart_n quality_n for_o whether_o it_o be_v that_o such_o be_v transport_v above_o themselves_o by_o a_o sudden_a rise_n of_o fortune_n so_o as_o not_o to_o know_v their_o mean_a beginning_n or_o whether_o it_o be_v that_o their_o father_n be_v raise_v to_o their_o greatness_n mere_o by_o virtue_n of_o their_o successful_a fortune_n in_o the_o world_n not_o for_o any_o noble_a and_o worthy_a performance_n these_o have_v not_o that_o vein_n of_o magnanimity_n largeness_n of_o soul_n generosity_n courtesy_n and_o liberality_n run_v in_o the_o blood_n as_o it_o be_v of_o some_o family_n who_o nobility_n be_v found_v in_o some_o noble_a exploit_n of_o virtue_n whatever_o may_v be_v the_o reason_n it_o be_v general_o observe_v that_o your_o new_a gentry_n be_v apt_a above_o other_o to_o carry_v it_o with_o a_o unreasonable_a haughtiness_n and_o disrespect_n towards_o their_o poor_a brethren_n but_o alas_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n in_o the_o world_n for_o this_o distance_n nor_o that_o slavery_n they_o put_v they_o to_o have_v we_o not_o one_o father_n and_o have_v not_o one_o god_n make_v we_o mal._n 2.10_o and_o be_v it_o not_o out_o of_o the_o same_o lump_n of_o clay_n that_o he_o make_v one_o vessel_n to_o honour_n and_o another_o to_o dishonour_v and_o when_o this_o earthly_a tabernacle_n of_o we_o shall_v be_v dissolve_v who_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o dust_n of_o prince_n and_o their_o mean_a vassal_n and_o be_v not_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o poor_a indian_a slave_n as_o spiritual_a and_o immortal_a as_o that_o of_o the_o rich_a merchant_n in_o europe_n and_o have_v it_o but_o the_o education_n which_o our_o european_n
have_v it_o be_v capable_a of_o receive_v as_o clear_a notion_n of_o god_n and_o of_o religion_n and_o of_o virtue_n as_o any_o of_o we_o all_o and_o no_o doubt_n be_v it_o adorn_v therewith_o and_o so_o have_v the_o image_n of_o god_n consist_v in_o these_o grace_n restore_v within_o it_o it_o will_v be_v as_o precious_a and_o dear_a to_o he_o and_o be_v receive_v into_o those_o mansion_n of_o bliss_n from_o which_o those_o proud_a tyrant_n over_o their_o fellow-creature_n liberty_n will_v certain_o be_v exclude_v if_o they_o continue_v to_o treat_v they_o with_o such_o distance_n and_o slavery_n sure_o i_o be_o the_o poor_a lazarus_n be_v now_o in_o abraham_n bosom_n when_o the_o rich_a and_o noble_a dives_n who_o treat_v he_o not_o with_o that_o respect_n and_o kindness_n as_o he_o do_v his_o dog_n be_v scorch_v in_o the_o flame_n of_o hell_n all_o which_o consider_v it_o do_v become_v the_o high_a in_o birth_n and_o quality_n to_o carry_v it_o with_o all_o due_a humility_n and_o courtesy_n to_o the_o low_a and_o to_o renounce_v and_o abandon_v those_o thought_n of_o honour_n and_o quality_n which_o thrust_v away_o their_o fellow-servant_n to_o the_o same_o god_n so_o far_o off_o they_o though_o they_o may_v not_o have_v the_o pretence_n of_o the_o pharisee_fw-mi for_o so_o do_v nor_o can_v say_v to_o they_o come_v not_o near_o i_o i_o be_o holy_a than_o thou_o but_o three_o those_o person_n ought_v indeed_o even_o to_o renounce_v all_o pretension_n to_o honour_n who_o have_v degenerate_v from_o those_o worthy_a quality_n which_o ennoble_v their_o ancestor_n ancestor_n such_o aught_o even_o to_o renounce_v all_o pretension_n to_o honour_n who_o have_v degenerate_v from_o those_o worthy_a quality_n which_o ennoble_v their_o ancestor_n the_o true_a nobility_n of_o those_o who_o be_v real_o of_o birth_n or_o quality_n be_v found_v as_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o in_o the_o heroic_a and_o extraordinary_a virtue_n of_o their_o ancestor_n and_o therefore_o their_o quality_n can_v be_v suppose_v to_o remain_v with_o they_o when_o those_o virtue_n which_o give_v be_v to_o it_o be_v depart_v from_o '_o they_o but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o none_o be_v half_a so_o apt_a to_o pride_n themselves_o in_o their_o family_n and_o to_o talk_v so_o much_o of_o their_o pedigree_n as_o those_o who_o have_v the_o least_o of_o any_o true_a worth_n remain_v in_o they_o and_o sure_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n they_o have_v but_o little_a of_o their_o own_o who_o do_v so_o much_o value_v themselves_o upon_o other_o deserve_n and_o seem_v to_o have_v nothing_o to_o brag_v of_o but_o borrow_a title_n we_o have_v abraham_n to_o our_o father_n be_v the_o constant_a cry_n of_o the_o jew_n when_o they_o have_v least_o of_o the_o faith_n and_o virtue_n of_o abraham_n however_o as_o apt_a as_o such_o be_v to_o assume_v this_o honour_n to_o themselves_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n but_o what_o be_v purchase_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o other_o shall_v be_v forfeit_v by_o their_o ill_a desert_n and_o that_o vice_n shall_v lose_v what_o virtue_n do_v gain_v case_n this_o the_o determination_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o their_o case_n and_o this_o our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v determine_v in_o the_o case_n of_o those_o jew_n think_v not_o to_o say_v within_o your_o heart_n we_o have_v abraham_n to_o our_o father_n for_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o god_n be_v able_a of_o these_o stone_n to_o raise_v up_o child_n to_o abraham_n matth._n 3.9_o that_o be_v by_o have_v degenerate_v from_o abraham_n you_o have_v forfeit_v your_o title_n to_o the_o name_n and_o honour_n of_o be_v abraham_n child_n and_o the_o vile_a gentile_n as_o you_o account_v they_o shall_v be_v take_v into_o that_o dignity_n and_o relation_n for_o he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o all_o they_o that_o believe_v though_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o circumcision_n and_o according_o in_o a_o true_a estimation_n of_o thing_n all_o those_o and_o those_o only_o be_v honourable_a who_o be_v virtuous_a though_o they_o can_v derive_v their_o pedigree_n from_o noble_a ancestor_n the_o honour_n of_o my_o house_n begin_v with_o i_o and_o the_o honour_n of_o thou_o end_v with_o thou_o say_v a_o worthy_a commander_n in_o plutarch_n to_o a_o debauch_a wretch_n who_o upbraid_v he_o with_o the_o meanness_n of_o his_o parentage_n last_o and_o such_o aught_o also_o even_o to_o renounce_v all_o pretension_n to_o honour_n among_o christian_n at_o leastwise_o who_o despise_v religion_n and_o its_o chief_a virtue_n as_o quality_n beneath_o they_o they_o last_o and_o such_o aught_o to_o renounce_v all_o pretension_n to_o honour_n among_o christian_n at_o leastwise_o who_o despise_v religion_n and_o its_o chief_a virtue_n as_o quality_n beneath_o '_o they_o and_o yet_o those_o be_v the_o person_n who_o take_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o only_a man_n of_o honour_n who_o can_v talk_v most_o atheistical_o and_o profane_o who_o life_n and_o conversation_n be_v make_v up_o of_o lewdness_n and_o debauchery_n and_o as_o to_o those_o grand_a distinguish_a grace_n of_o christianity_n humility_n meekness_n and_o a_o patient_a endure_v of_o injury_n and_o affront_v who_o count_v they_o a_o mere_a jest_n which_o man_n of_o quality_n and_o honour_n it_o be_v impossible_a shall_v submit_v to_o but_o be_v it_o so_o only_o let_v they_o withal_o consider_v that_o not_o many_o mighty_a not_o many_o noble_a be_v call_v but_o the_o base_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n and_o thing_n which_o be_v despise_v have_v god_n choose_v yea_o and_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o to_o bring_v to_o nought_o thing_n which_o be_v 1_o cor._n 1.26.28_o and_o what_o then_o signify_v their_o honour_n when_o god_n despise_v it_o but_o real_o it_o be_v not_o so_o that_o your_o profligate_n and_o lewd_a liver_n be_v their_o birth_n or_o quality_n never_o so_o great_a be_v honour_v and_o respect_v among_o man_n for_o whilst_o they_o continue_v in_o a_o mean_a and_o vile_a slavery_n to_o their_o base_a lust_n they_o be_v not_o only_o in_o truth_n and_o reality_n miserable_a and_o wretched_a caitiff_n but_o whatever_o they_o think_v of_o themselves_o they_o be_v indeed_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o other_o most_o hateful_a and_o contemptible_a true_a it_o be_v the_o great_a part_n of_o man_n and_o pity_v it_o be_v that_o so_o many_o among_o christian_n shall_v still_o remain_v so_o carnally-minded_n do_v look_v upon_o the_o man_n who_o will_v not_o revenge_v a_o affront_n to_o be_v mean_v spirit_v and_o scarce_o a_o gentleman_n and_o the_o desperate_a duellist_n be_v the_o more_o honourable_a and_o heroic_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o those_o who_o be_v thorough_o season_v with_o religion_n and_o wisdom_n dictate_v have_v other_o thought_n and_o apprehension_n of_o such_o a_o one_o and_o count_v he_o the_o only_a person_n of_o true_a courage_n and_o of_o a_o great_a soul_n who_o can_v despise_v the_o vain_a opinion_n of_o the_o crowd_n in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o real_a virtue_n and_o above_o all_o the_o meek_a and_o forgive_a christian_a have_v this_o honour_n that_o he_o have_v a_o easy_a access_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n can_v come_v into_o his_o presence_n with_o confidence_n and_o assurance_n whilst_o the_o other_o though_o the_o great_a man_n on_o earth_n for_o quality_n dare_v not_o approach_v he_o without_o tremble_v and_o horror_n and_o yet_o if_o vain_a man_n will_v give_v the_o honour_n here_o to_o those_o who_o be_v most_o contemptible_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n men._n but_o if_o such_o be_v account_v honourable_a by_o vain_a man_n they_o be_v despicable_a in_o the_o eye_n both_o of_o god_n and_o of_o all_o wise_a and_o good_a men._n it_o be_v very_o unfit_a it_o shall_v be_v so_o among_o christian_n however_o let_v the_o humble_a and_o meek_n content_v himself_o with_o this_o that_o here_o on_o earth_n he_o have_v the_o approbation_n and_o esteem_n of_o all_o wise_a and_o good_a man_n and_o shall_v receive_v in_o heaven_n from_o the_o unerring_a judgement_n of_o god_n a_o testimony_n before_o the_o whole_a choir_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n to_o his_o infinite_a and_o eternal_a honour_n and_o glory_n a_o testimony_n i_o say_v which_o will_v far_o exalt_v he_o above_o the_o high_a of_o mortal_a man_n who_o consider_v their_o own_o quality_n more_o than_o god_n glory_n and_o prefer_v a_o empty_a notion_n of_o honour_n before_o the_o real_a and_o substantial_a grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n renounce_v the_o sum_n how_o far_o paternal_a honour_n be_v to_o be_v renounce_v in_o a_o word_n and_o to_o sum_v up_o what_o have_v be_v speak_v to_o this_o point_n paternal_a honour_n be_v indeed_o in_o itself_o useful_a and_o valuable_a as_o it_o put_v before_o man_n eye_n the_o worthy_a deed_n of_o their_o ancestor_n and_o as_o it_o inspire_v they_o to_o a_o
imitation_n of_o they_o in_o the_o most_o excellent_a and_o noble_a instance_n and_o strain_n of_o virtue_n but_o so_o far_o as_o man_n opinion_n of_o their_o birth_n or_o quality_n pretend_v to_o put_v they_o above_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o man_n and_o beyond_o reproof_n or_o punishment_n when_o they_o have_v violate_v either_o and_o when_o it_o exalt_v they_o above_o their_o brethren_n to_o that_o degree_n as_o to_o despise_v and_o oppress_v the_o rest_n of_o mankind_n as_o if_o in_o respect_n of_o themselves_o they_o be_v no_o better_a than_o brute_n creature_n these_o be_v no_o other_o than_o mere_a paganish_a and_o heathenish_a notion_n of_o honour_n and_o must_v be_v renounce_v and_o detest_a by_o every_o christian_a and_o indeed_o those_o aught_o even_o to_o renounce_v all_o pretension_n to_o any_o honour_n who_o have_v base_o degenerate_v from_o those_o noble_a and_o virtuous_a quality_n which_o ennoble_v their_o ancestor_n and_o do_v constitute_v they_o honourable_a but_o especial_o such_o aught_o to_o renounce_v all_o pretension_n to_o honour_n among_o christian_n at_o leastwise_o who_o despise_v religion_n and_o its_o chief_a virtue_n as_o quality_n beneath_o '_o they_o so_o that_o thus_o you_o have_v at_o length_n see_v in_o what_o sense_n and_o how_o far_o paternal_a honour_n be_v to_o be_v renounce_v that_o honour_n which_o be_v derive_v upon_o person_n from_o their_o forefather_n by_o nature_n second_o and_o now_o i_o be_o in_o like_a manner_n to_o consider_v civil_a honour_n honour_n ii_o in_o what_o sense_n and_o how_o far_o civil_a honour_n be_v to_o be_v renounce_v whether_o the_o favour_n of_o prince_n or_o the_o effect_n of_o their_o favour_n post_n of_o honour_n that_o which_o be_v derive_v upon_o person_n from_o the_o father_n of_o their_o country_n or_o those_o who_o have_v the_o supreme_a power_n and_o authority_n in_o a_o land_n and_o be_v next_o under_o god_n the_o sole_a fountain_n of_o this_o sort_n of_o honour_n and_o it_o be_v either_o that_o which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o far_a honour_n viz._n the_o favour_n of_o prince_n or_o the_o honour_n themselves_o which_o they_o confer_v upon_o person_n deserve_v their_o favour_n as_o pre-eminence_n and_o authority_n dignity_n and_o promotion_n which_o be_v usual_o call_v post_n of_o honour_n as_o also_o those_o title_n and_o distinction_n which_o do_v common_o accompany_v and_o go_v along_o therewith_o and_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o prince_n favour_n now_o as_o to_o both_o these_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o in_o themselves_o they_o be_v good_a and_o useful_a and_o may_v be_v very_o advantageous_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o religion_n for_o the_o more_o a_o man_n be_v in_o his_o prince_n favour_n and_o the_o great_a be_v his_o authority_n and_o trust_n the_o more_o he_o be_v support_v with_o power_n and_o pre-eminence_n and_o the_o great_a figure_n he_o make_v in_o the_o world_n the_o more_o capable_a he_o shall_v be_v of_o protect_v true_a religion_n of_o reward_v and_o encourage_v piety_n and_o virtue_n and_o of_o discountenance_v and_o casheer_v wickedness_n and_o vice_n as_o be_v see_v in_o the_o favour_n of_o hester_n and_o mordecai_n with_o king_n ahasuerus_n hest_n 8._o but_o then_o except_o the_o mind_n be_v first_o well_o season_v with_o principle_n of_o religion_n and_o virtue_n and_o ballast_v with_o humility_n prince_n favour_n high_a place_n precedence_n and_o title_n give_v great_a temptation_n to_o several_a sin_n and_o that_o both_o in_o the_o get_v possess_v and_o lose_v thereof_o these_o kind_n of_o honour_n and_o outward_a glory_n be_v dazzle_v and_o bewitch_a thing_n thing_n these_o kind_n of_o honour_n and_o outward_a glory_n be_v dazzle_v and_o bewitch_a thing_n they_o draw_v the_o eye_n of_o whole_a crowd_n upon_o they_o gaze_v and_o admire_v and_o almost_o adore_v those_o who_o be_v invest_v with_o '_o they_o they_o bring_v many_o humble_a petitioner_n to_o wait_v upon_o they_o and_o these_o be_v the_o man_n who_o keep_v the_o world_n in_o subjection_n and_o awe_n under_o '_o they_o and_o therefore_o in_o obtain_v a_o prince_n favour_n many_o be_v tempt_v to_o the_o gross_a flattery_n in_o keep_v it_o to_o the_o most_o servile_a and_o sinful_a compliance_n and_o rather_o than_o lose_v it_o to_o sacrifice_v innocence_n and_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o as_o to_o the_o honour_n themselves_o the_o glory_n thereof_o tempt_v some_o to_o grasp_v after_o they_o who_o have_v no_o ability_n nor_o skill_n to_o manage_v they_o the_o denial_n often_o cause_v those_o who_o have_v real_a ability_n but_o know_v it_o too_o well_o to_o turn_v malcontent_n and_o mutineer_n to_o the_o shock_v many_o time_n of_o church_n and_o state_n and_o most_o man_n be_v tempt_v to_o aspire_v after_o they_o mere_o to_o serve_v their_o own_o private_a end_n not_o the_o public_a good_a by_o they_o and_o last_o to_o compass_v and_o purchase_v they_o by_o most_o indirect_a and_o unlawful_a mean_n in_o the_o possession_n of_o they_o person_n be_v apt_a to_o grow_v proud_a and_o imperious_a unjust_a and_o cruel_a and_o at_o the_o best_a shall_v be_v much_o divert_v from_o mind_v the_o great_a business_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o last_o the_o hazard_n of_o lose_v they_o be_v dangerous_a temptation_n to_o many_o to_o obey_v man_n rather_o than_o god_n that_o they_o may_v still_o retain_v '_o they_o but_o first_o as_o to_o a_o prince_n favour_n though_o it_o be_v extreme_o valuable_a when_o it_o can_v be_v have_v without_o sin_n compliance_n but_o first_o a_o prince_n favour_n though_o extreme_o valuable_a when_o it_o can_v be_v have_v without_o sin_n yet_o no_o man_n must_v gain_v possess_v or_o retain_v it_o by_o wicked_a art_n or_o sinful_a compliance_n and_o prince_n ought_v to_o be_v apply_v to_o and_o court_v for_o the_o favour_n man_n expect_v from_o they_o and_o must_v be_v hold_v in_o the_o great_a veneration_n as_o the_o vicegerent_n of_o god_n upon_o earth_n by_o they_o and_o no_o wise_a nor_o good_a man_n will_v forfeit_v without_o necessity_n the_o esteem_n of_o they_o yet_o no_o man_n must_v wind_v himself_o into_o their_o affection_n by_o flatter_v of_o their_o vice_n none_o must_v obey_v their_o unlawful_a command_n as_o the_o duty_n of_o his_o place_n nor_o must_v any_o for_o fear_n of_o incur_v their_o displeasure_n choose_v rather_o to_o displease_v god_n there_o be_v several_a instance_n in_o the_o scripture_n of_o good_a and_o wise_a man_n which_o show_v you_o how_o and_o in_o what_o case_n it_o be_v necessary_a for_o man_n so_o far_o to_o deny_v themselves_o as_o to_o renounce_v their_o favour_n among_o which_o take_v that_o of_o john_n the_o baptist_n instead_o of_o many_o this_o just_a and_o holy_a man_n be_v much_o in_o the_o esteem_n and_o favour_n of_o herod_n who_o observe_v he_o and_o when_o he_o hear_v he_o he_o do_v many_o thing_n and_o hear_v he_o glad_o mar._n 6.20_o nevertheless_o this_o holy_a man_n be_v so_o far_o from_o flatter_v of_o he_o that_o he_o do_v not_o stick_v to_o reprove_v he_o for_o his_o incest_n and_o for_o all_o the_o evil_n he_o have_v do_v luk._n 3.19_o though_o to_o the_o loss_n of_o that_o prince_n favour_n and_o his_o own_o life_n mar._n 6.27_o second_o proceed_v we_o next_o to_o consider_v honour_n nor_o second_o the_o effect_n of_o their_o favour_n high_a place_n and_o title_n of_o honour_n what_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v do_v with_o respect_n to_o the_o effect_n of_o prince_n favour_n those_o honourable_a post_n the_o pre-eminence_n and_o authority_n the_o dignity_n and_o promotion_n to_o which_o they_o do_v advance_v those_o who_o they_o favour_v and_o those_o title_n of_o honour_n and_o distinction_n which_o do_v usual_o go_v along_o therewith_o and_o in_o the_o obtain_v of_o these_o post_n of_o honour_n and_o place_n of_o trust_n and_o power_n first_o there_o must_v be_v no_o grasp_a at_o that_o which_o be_v above_o a_o man_n capacity_n and_o ability_n to_o manage_v to_o the_o public_a good_n good_n i._o in_o the_o obtain_n of_o these_o no_o man_n must_v grasp_v at_o that_o which_o be_v above_o his_o capacity_n and_o ability_n to_o manage_v to_o the_o public_a good_n for_o any_o person_n out_o of_o a_o vain_a opinion_n he_o have_v conceive_v of_o his_o own_o part_n and_o ability_n to_o undertake_v business_n he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o perform_v and_o to_o meddle_v in_o thing_n he_o do_v not_o understand_v be_v a_o great_a injury_n both_o to_o himself_o and_o other_o to_o himself_o in_o expose_v his_o own_o insufficiency_n which_o in_o a_o low_a station_n will_v have_v lie_v hide_v and_o never_o be_v censure_v nor_o reproach_v he_o do_v injure_v other_o thereby_o in_o pervert_v judgement_n and_o justice_n through_o his_o unskilfulness_n in_o not_o dispatch_v man_n with_o quickness_n and_o dexterity_n in_o their_o lawful_a occasion_n and_o business_n and_o by_o keep_v out_o
himself_o that_o he_o correct_v it_o with_o a_o not_o i_o but_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v with_o i_o 1_o cor._n 15.10_o and_o so_o must_v all_o of_o we_o do_v and_o instead_o of_o glory_v in_o ourselves_o must_v glory_n in_o the_o lord_n and_o say_v not_o unto_o we_o not_o unto_o we_o but_o unto_o thy_o name_n be_v the_o praise_n psal_n 115.1_o and_o the_o reason_n thereof_o be_v that_o the_o good_a temper_n of_o our_o soul_n be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o if_o we_o shall_v accomplish_v any_o worthy_a design_n beside_o that_o it_o be_v owe_v to_o his_o grace_n assist_v we_o it_o be_v owe_v also_o to_o his_o providence_n which_o order_v all_o those_o lucky_a hit_n and_o favourable_a circumstance_n and_o all_o those_o other_o advantage_n whereby_o we_o do_v bring_v it_o to_o perfection_n for_o every_o good_a and_o perfect_a gift_n come_v from_o above_o jam._n 1.17_o and_o what_o be_v it_o that_o we_o have_v not_o receive_v 1_o cor._n 4.7_o we_o be_v not_o forbid_v to_o receive_v honour_n say_v the_o pious_a and_o learned_a bishop_n taylor_n but_o to_o seek_v it_o for_o design_n of_o pride_n and_o complacency_n or_o to_o make_v it_o rest_v in_o our_o heart_n but_o when_o the_o hand_n of_o virtue_n receive_v the_o honour_n and_o transmits_n it_n to_o god_n from_o our_o own_o head_n the_o desire_n of_o nature_n be_v sufficient_o satisfy_v and_o nothing_o of_o religion_n contradict_v advancement_n iv_o we_o must_v abhor_v make_v a_o reputation_n for_o religion_n a_o instrument_n only_o to_o our_o own_o advancement_n four_o you_o must_v abhor_v that_o vain_a hypocrisy_n of_o those_o who_o make_v the_o reputation_n for_o religion_n a_o mere_a engine_n to_o screw_v themselves_o up_o into_o place_n of_o power_n and_o a_o instrument_n to_o promote_v their_o trade_n only_o but_o must_v chief_o use_v that_o authority_n which_o your_o credit_n and_o reputation_n for_o religion_n may_v give_v you_o to_o discountenance_v vice_n and_o to_o encourage_v virtue_n in_o the_o world_n you_o must_v renounce_v and_o abhor_v i_o say_v that_o profane_a hypocrisy_n of_o those_o who_o make_v their_o reputation_n for_o religion_n a_o mere_a engine_n to_o screw_v themselves_o up_o into_o place_n of_o power_n and_o a_o instrument_n to_o promote_v their_o trade_n only_o this_o be_v the_o know_a policy_n of_o a_o great_a many_o who_o when_o they_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o usurp_v the_o place_n of_o their_o governor_n put_v up_o to_o be_v great_a zealot_n for_o reformation_n of_o religion_n and_o manner_n and_o when_o they_o have_v a_o design_n to_o engross_v to_o themselves_o all_o the_o trade_n of_o their_o neighbour_n turn_v over_o to_o some_o demure_a and_o pharisaical_a sect_n that_o make_v great_a pretence_n and_o outward_a show_n of_o godliness_n than_o their_o honest_a but_o modest_a neighbour_n but_o for_o any_o person_n to_o presume_v to_o make_v so_o sacred_a and_o venerable_a a_o thing_n as_o religion_n real_o be_v a_o mere_a tool_n and_o engine_n to_o mount_v themselves_o into_o the_o high_a post_n and_o promotion_n into_o business_n and_o trade_n be_v so_o sacrilegious_a so_o profane_a a_o impiety_n such_o a_o aggravate_v such_o a_o provoke_a pitch_n of_o wickedness_n that_o if_o hell_n be_v heat_v as_o the_o babylonian_a furnace_n be_v seven_o time_n hot_a than_o ordinary_a for_o any_o sort_n of_o sinner_n sure_o it_o must_v be_v for_o those_o who_o do_v prostitute_v the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o religion_n to_o such_o vile_a purpose_n and_o this_o therefore_o be_v a_o practice_n which_o must_v of_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n be_v detest_v by_o you_o certain_a it_o be_v the_o mild_a jesus_n be_v never_o know_v to_o utter_v himself_o with_o so_o much_o indignation_n and_o anger_n as_o towards_o those_o sort_n of_o man_n who_o make_v the_o pretence_n of_o religion_n a_o mere_a instrument_n to_o serve_v their_o ambition_n and_o covetousness_n woe_n unto_o you_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n hypocrite_n for_o you_o devour_v widow_n house_n and_o for_o a_o pretence_n make_v long_a prayer_n therefore_o you_o shall_v receive_v the_o great_a damnation_n matth._n 23.14_o so_o that_o far_o be_v it_o from_o any_o of_o you_o to_o make_v so_o sacred_a and_o venerable_a a_o thing_n as_o religion_n a_o instrument_n only_o of_o ambition_n and_o get_v wealth_n world_n but_o must_v use_v the_o authority_n our_o credit_n give_v we_o to_o discountenance_v vice_n and_o to_o encourage_v virtue_n in_o the_o world_n but_o you_o must_v use_v that_o authority_n which_o your_o credit_n and_o reputation_n for_o religion_n may_v give_v you_o to_o discountenance_v vice_n and_o to_o encourage_v virtue_n in_o the_o world_n a_o person_n of_o approve_a sincerity_n and_o of_o know_a piety_n have_v upon_o that_o very_a account_n a_o very_a great_a power_n over_o the_o heart_n and_o mind_n of_o man_n as_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o so_o that_o he_o can_v easy_o mould_v they_o into_o the_o like_a temper_n with_o himself_o if_o he_o will_v but_o serious_o apply_v himself_o to_o that_o purpose_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n therefore_o you_o must_v use_v that_o credit_n reputation_n and_o authority_n you_o shall_v have_v with_o man_n who_o think_v well_o and_o honourable_o of_o you_o namely_o to_o pull_v they_o back_o from_o run_v headlong_o in_o a_o course_n of_o sin_n and_o as_o allurement_n to_o entice_v they_o to_o follow_v your_o example_n in_o those_o virtue_n and_o good_a part_n for_o which_o you_o yourselves_o shall_v be_v so_o commendable_a it_o be_v a_o talon_n god_n have_v commit_v to_o you_o to_o trade_n withal_o for_o his_o glory_n and_o if_o you_o shall_v neglect_v to_o lay_v out_o any_o thing_n of_o that_o nature_n to_o your_o master_n use_n it_o will_v be_v require_v at_o your_o hand_n as_o you_o will_v see_v matth._n 25._o five_o as_o valuable_a as_o be_v a_o good_a name_n and_o reputation_n among_o man_n you_o must_v renounce_v all_o undue_a mean_n of_o preserve_v it_o it_o v._o as_o valuable_a as_o be_v a_o good_a name_n and_o reputation_n among_o man_n we_o must_v renounce_v all_o undue_a mean_n of_o preserve_v it_o in_o which_o rank_n i_o shall_v place_v not_o only_o duel_v that_o most_o barbarous_a and_o unchristian_a custom_n among_o the_o great_a one_o one_o such_o be_v duel_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o slander_n among_o the_o great_a one_o but_o also_o go_v to_o law_n upon_o every_o scandal_n so_o common_a among_o the_o ordinary_a sort_n of_o people_n when_o the_o slander_n one_o another_o as_o to_o the_o former_a that_o person_n who_o challenge_n his_o slanderer_n to_o give_v he_o satisfaction_n as_o he_o call_v it_o in_o the_o way_n of_o duel_n he_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o take_v the_o ready_a way_n to_o confirm_v the_o world_n in_o the_o opinion_n that_o he_o be_v not_o injure_v the_o worst_a his_o adversary_n can_v say_v of_o he_o be_v something_o which_o speak_v he_o a_o very_a ill_a man_n and_o herein_o he_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v himself_o the_o worst_a of_o man_n even_o a_o murderer_n of_o his_o neighbour_n and_o a_o felo_fw-la de_fw-fr and_o consequent_o one_o that_o may_v not_o be_v unlikely_a to_o commit_v any_o other_o wickedness_n but_o if_o it_o shall_v take_v off_o the_o scandal_n from_o he_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o a_o foolish_a world_n what_o comfort_n will_v that_o afford_v when_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o no_o murderer_n have_v eternal_a life_n abide_v in_o he_o 1_o joh._n 3.15_o nor_o be_v it_o so_o agreeable_a to_o that_o forbear_n and_o forgive_a temper_n people_n go_v to_o law_n thereupon_o usual_a among_o common_a people_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o every_o christian_a to_o go_v to_o law_n upon_o word_n of_o slander_n now_o therefore_o there_o be_v utter_o a_o fault_n among_o you_o because_o you_o go_v to_o law_n one_o with_o another_o why_o do_v you_o not_o rather_o take_v wrong_a that_o be_v in_o matter_n of_o trespass_n and_o fraud_n if_o the_o loss_n may_v be_v support_v or_o in_o case_n of_o slander_n wherein_o general_o speak_v there_o be_v a_o much_o more_o effectual_a way_n of_o clear_v a_o injure_a innocence_n than_o by_o impleading_a of_o the_o slanderer_n before_o a_o magistrate_n why_o in_o such_o case_n do_v you_o not_o rather_o take_v wrong_a i_o say_v in_o such_o case_n there_o be_v general_o a_o much_o more_o effectual_a way_n of_o clear_v a_o injure_a innocence_n than_o by_o impleading_a of_o the_o slanderer_n before_o a_o magistrate_n for_o beside_o that_o this_o sort_n of_o lawing_n seem_v in_o most_o a_o piece_n of_o revenge_n in_o the_o party_n traduce_v upon_o his_o accuser_n for_o discover_v some_o secret_a wickedness_n which_o he_o be_v ashamed_a to_o have_v publish_v rather_o than_o with_o any_o design_n or_o hope_n of_o clear_v his_o innocence_n insomuch_o that_o he_o who_o come_v off_o triumphant_o
joy_n in_o god_n or_o the_o eternal_a joy_n of_o his_o kingdom_n kingdom_n as_o first_o when_o we_o prefer_v they_o in_o our_o judgement_n or_o desire_n either_o before_o our_o spiritual_a joy_n in_o god_n or_o the_o eternal_a joy_n of_o his_o kingdom_n which_o be_v what_o the_o carnal_a man_n do_v do_v which_o be_v i_o say_v what_o the_o carnal_a man_n do_v do_v for_o while_o the_o flesh_n be_v the_o prevail_a ingredient_n in_o any_o man_n he_o only_o relish_v the_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o sense_n he_o can_v enjoy_v god_n he_o can_v delight_v in_o do_v his_o will_n no_o more_o than_o a_o swine_n can_v in_o clean_a pasture_n who_o natural_a property_n incline_v he_o only_o to_o wallow_v in_o the_o mire_n but_o when_o the_o soul_n be_v clarify_v and_o purge_v by_o the_o great_a refiner_n how_o sublime_a and_o satisfy_v a_o pleasure_n do_v it_o feel_v in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o in_o his_o service_n as_o in_o natural_a feeding_n when_o the_o palate_n be_v in_o due_a temper_n our_o taste_n commend_v our_o proper_a food_n to_o the_o appetite_n and_o the_o appetite_n to_o the_o stomach_n but_o a_o foul_a stomach_n disaffects_a the_o appetite_n spoil_v the_o palate_n and_o the_o most_o savoury_a and_o wholesome_a meat_n be_v loathsome_a when_o the_o disease_n be_v the_o taster_n thus_o if_o the_o soul_n be_v in_o its_o due_a temper_n the_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n will_v be_v our_o meat_n and_o drink_n mix_v with_o a_o sweet_a pleasure_n than_o those_o natural_a operation_n be_v but_o the_o soul_n in_o the_o unregenerate_a man_n be_v so_o corrupt_a and_o carnalize_v that_o it_o have_v no_o taste_n of_o the_o pure_a delight_n of_o bless_a spirit_n in_o communion_n with_o god_n like_o the_o israelite_n who_o despise_v the_o bread_n of_o angel_n and_o impatient_o long_v for_o the_o onion_n and_o garlic_n and_o fleshpot_n of_o egypt_n but_o this_o must_v not_o be_v our_o temper_n but_o with_o the_o holy_a psalmist_n we_o must_v be_v able_a experimental_o to_o say_v the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v clean_a endure_v for_o ever_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v true_a and_o righteous_a altogether_o more_o to_o be_v desire_v be_v they_o than_o gold_n yea_o than_o much_o fine_a gold_n sweet_a also_o than_o honey_n and_o the_o honeycomb_n psal_n 19.9_o 10._o second_o and_o we_o must_v renounce_v it_o as_o a_o great_a sign_n of_o a_o sensual_a spirit_n which_o relish_v no_o enjoyment_n like_o those_o of_o sense_n sense_n ii_o when_o a_o man_n relish_v no_o enjoyment_n like_o those_o of_o sense_n when_o a_o person_n be_v observe_v to_o be_v whole_o in_o a_o manner_n purvey_v for_o the_o belly_n cooking_n or_o order_v his_o dish_n always_o commend_v or_o rather_o quarrel_v with_o every_o thing_n he_o eat_v or_o drink_v no_o the_o discourse_n of_o philosophical_a wise_a and_o virtuous_a mind_n be_v even_o at_o the_o very_a table_n of_o other-guess_a matter_n than_o of_o the_o excellency_n of_o that_o dish_n the_o poynancy_n of_o such_o a_o sauce_n or_o the_o flavour_n of_o such_o and_o such_o liquor_n and_o with_o these_o epicure_n we_o may_v just_o expostulate_v in_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v you_o yet_o without_o understanding_n do_v you_o not_o yet_o understand_v that_o whatever_o enter_v into_o the_o mouth_n go_v into_o the_o belly_n and_o be_v cast_v out_o into_o the_o draught_n matth._n 15.17_o and_o it_o be_v sure_a a_o sign_n of_o a_o understanding_n below_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n to_o concern_v itself_o so_o much_o about_o what_o in_o few_o hour_n will_v go_v down_o into_o the_o gut_n the_o sink_v and_o the_o vile_a part_n of_o the_o body_n three_o it_o must_v be_v renounce_v as_o a_o high_a and_o sinful_a sensuality_n to_o glut_v our_o sense_n so_o as_o to_o surfeit_v on_o these_o sweet_n sweet_n iii_o when_o he_o glut_v himself_o so_o as_o to_o surfeit_v on_o these_o sweet_n there_o be_v nothing_o which_o do_v more_o decay_n nature_n which_o bring_v upon_o we_o more_o desperate_a and_o incurable_a disease_n and_o do_v more_o precipitate_a and_o hasten_v a_o sudden_a death_n than_o excess_n in_o the_o gratification_n of_o man_n lust_n and_o appetite_n but_o this_o be_v gross_o to_o abuse_v the_o creature_n of_o god_n which_o be_v allow_v we_o only_o for_o our_o use_n it_o be_v to_o make_v but_o a_o ungrateful_a return_n to_o he_o for_o all_o his_o bounty_n and_o be_v unnatural_o to_o destroy_v ourselves_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o a_o paltry_a pleasure_n which_o vanish_v in_o the_o very_a enjoyment_n of_o a_o pleasure_n which_o be_v mix_v with_o more_o bitter_a ingredient_n than_o gall_n and_o wormwood_n for_o even_o in_o their_o laughter_n the_o heart_n of_o those_o sensual_a man_n be_v sorrowful_a and_o the_o end_n of_o their_o mirth_n be_v heaviness_n prov._n 14.13_o last_o the_o deliciousness_n of_o those_o pleasure_n must_v not_o cause_v any_o one_o to_o load_v and_o burden_n his_o nature_n therewith_o to_o that_o degree_n as_o to_o render_v he_o unfit_a for_o the_o duty_n of_o his_o call_v and_o religion_n religion_n and_o last_o when_o the_o deliciousness_n of_o these_o pleasure_n cause_v he_o to_o load_v and_o burden_n his_o nature_n therewith_o so_o as_o to_o render_v he_o unfit_a for_o the_o duty_n of_o his_o call_v and_o religion_n in_o which_o respect_n those_o do_v offend_v who_o do_v so_o immoderate_o indulge_v the_o appetite_n in_o eat_v and_o drink_v that_o they_o be_v drowsy_a and_o sleepy_a even_o under_o the_o message_n send_v they_o from_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n and_o deliver_v they_o by_o his_o ambassador_n the_o preacher_n of_o his_o word_n no_o the_o end_n of_o all_o pleasure_n as_o well_o as_o of_o recreation_n be_v to_o render_v we_o not_o less_o but_o more_o vigorous_a and_o lively_a in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o proper_a business_n of_o our_o call_v which_o bring_v i_o last_o to_o consider_v recreative_a pleasure_n and_o to_o show_v you_o what_o they_o be_v in_o what_o sense_n and_o how_o far_o we_o be_v to_o renounce_v those_o sort_n of_o pleasure_n now_o these_o be_v mere_o of_o a_o middle_n and_o of_o a_o indifferent_a nature_n nature_n recreative_a pleasure_n of_o a_o middle_n and_o indifferent_a nature_n they_o be_v neither_o whole_o mental_a nor_o altogether_o bodily_a pleasure_n but_o may_v be_v either_o and_o they_o be_v neither_o necessary_o good_a nor_o evil_a but_o either_o one_o or_o other_o according_a as_o they_o be_v use_v for_o when_o the_o mind_n have_v be_v long_a intent_n upon_o study_n and_o meditation_n it_o may_v be_v very_o convenient_a to_o unbend_v it_o by_o give_v ourselves_o some_o bodily_a diversion_n as_o walk_v ride_v or_o other_o innocent_a recreation_n and_o when_o the_o body_n have_v be_v long_o fatigue_v and_o weary_v with_o labour_n it_o be_v requisite_a to_o give_v it_o ease_n and_o it_o be_v no_o wise_a hurtful_a either_o to_o soul_n or_o body_n to_o fall_v into_o a_o cheerful_a provide_v it_o be_v a_o innocent_a conversation_n and_o indeed_o the_o moderate_a use_n of_o innocent_a pleasure_n and_o recreation_n be_v both_o useful_a and_o necessary_a it_o enlivens_fw-la nature_n brisk_v up_o our_o spirit_n and_o render_v we_o more_o able_a to_o set_v again_o about_o serious_a business_n and_o employment_n for_o to_o intermix_v no_o gratification_n nor_o diversion_n with_o our_o more_o serious_a affair_n make_v the_o mind_n unactive_a dull_a and_o useless_a but_o recreation_n the_o most_o innocent_a of_o they_o be_v to_o be_v moderate_o and_o spare_o use_v by_o every_o christian_a use_v the_o most_o innocent_a thereof_o be_v to_o be_v spare_o use_v for_o he_o that_o shall_v much_o indulge_v himself_o in_o the_o allow_v pleasure_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v quick_o bring_v himself_o into_o a_o frame_n of_o spirit_n that_o will_v not_o easy_o endure_v patience_n self-denial_n and_o mortification_n and_o other_o the_o more_o difficult_a and_o considerable_a part_n of_o religion_n ease_n and_o diversion_n soften_v the_o sinew_n dissolve_v the_o nerve_n and_o be_v apt_a to_o render_v we_o nice_a and_o delicate_a and_o effeminate_a a_o temper_n the_o most_o unsuitable_a for_o any_o soldier_n because_o it_o will_v utter_o indispose_v he_o for_o military_a severity_n ease_n and_o pleasure_n therefore_o must_v be_v wary_o indulge_v to_o by_o the_o soldier_n of_o jesus_n in_o who_o warfare_n there_o be_v both_o conflict_n and_o severity_n far_o surpass_v the_o hard_a which_o other_o war_n engage_v we_o in_o no_o if_o you_o will_v become_v excellent_a in_o religion_n nay_o keep_v but_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o innocence_n you_o must_v innure_v yourselves_o much_o to_o christian_a severity_n and_o reservedness_n and_o the_o most_o harmless_a of_o this_o world_n delight_n be_v to_o be_v more_o rare_o use_v than_o be_v common_o think_v of_o he_o that_o constant_o eat_v a_o
and_o injury_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n as_o namely_o when_o those_o who_o be_v master_n do_v so_o far_o exceed_v in_o their_o command_n as_o to_o give_v no_o leisure_n to_o their_o servant_n to_o provide_v for_o the_o good_a of_o their_o own_o soul_n but_o such_o a_o dominion_n as_o this_o must_v be_v utter_o renounce_v brute_n but_o all_o that_o dominion_n be_v to_o be_v utter_o renounce_v among_o christian_n which_o treat_v servant_n no_o better_o than_o slave_n and_o brute_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o thing_n never_o hear_v of_o among_o christian_n that_o a_o servant_n shall_v be_v such_o a_o slave_n as_o to_o be_v treat_v no_o better_a than_o a_o brute_n and_o as_o pasture_n be_v the_o only_a thing_n provide_v for_o the_o latter_a so_o bodily_a necessary_n shall_v be_v the_o only_a thing_n take_v care_n of_o for_o the_o former_a no_o every_o one_o that_o will_v expect_v abraham_n blessing_n and_o favour_n with_o god_n must_v have_v abraham_n pious_a care_n of_o the_o religious_a education_n and_o government_n both_o of_o his_o child_n and_o servant_n concern_v who_o it_o be_v record_v that_o god_n do_v impart_v unto_o he_o a_o very_a great_a secret_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o singular_a favour_n upon_o this_o very_a account_n that_o he_o know_v he_o will_v command_v his_o child_n and_o his_o household_n after_o he_o that_o they_o shall_v keep_v the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o do_v justice_n and_o judgement_n gen._n 18.19_o so_o that_o when_o any_o of_o you_o shall_v grow_v up_o or_o arrive_v to_o that_o condition_n to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o a_o family_n this_o must_v be_v also_o your_o care_n and_o you_o must_v utter_o renounce_v the_o treat_v your_o servant_n at_o that_o distance_n as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o fellow-servant_n with_o you_o to_o the_o same_o god_n second_o the_o next_o condition_n unhappy_a the_o state_n of_o servant_n not_o in_o itself_o unhappy_a or_o state_n of_o life_n in_o this_o world_n to_o be_v consider_v of_o be_v that_o of_o servant_n now_o a_o servant_n among_o christian_n if_o he_o be_v not_o barbarous_o and_o un-christian_o use_v be_v not_o the_o most_o unhappy_a state_n though_o he_o have_v not_o his_o master_n liberty_n yet_o if_o he_o have_v less_o of_o his_o licentiousness_n he_o be_v the_o happy_a man._n but_o yet_o if_o it_o fall_v out_o so_o that_o the_o master_n and_o family_n he_o happen_v into_o be_v disorderly_o debauch_a and_o wicked_a he_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o mighty_a temptation_n and_o in_o great_a danger_n of_o be_v corrupt_v and_o therefore_o first_o it_o concern_v every_o person_n who_o be_v to_o live_v by_o a_o service_n sin_n i._o it_o concern_v every_o person_n who_o be_v to_o live_v by_o a_o service_n to_o avoid_v such_o where_o there_o be_v neither_o the_o mean_n of_o religion_n nor_o restraint_n upon_o sin_n to_o renounce_v and_o refuse_v those_o if_o extreme_a necessity_n and_o want_v of_o better_a do_v not_o compel_v he_o to_o accept_v of_o such_o where_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o wickedness_n be_v practise_v without_o control_v and_o little_a of_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v see_v among_o master_n or_o servant_n we_o do_v daily_o pray_v to_o god_n not_o to_o lead_v we_o into_o temptation_n and_o those_o who_o be_v sincere_a in_o their_o prayer_n will_v not_o voluntary_o throw_v themselves_o into_o such_o a_o dangerous_a place_n of_o temptation_n as_o be_v a_o wicked_a family_n where_o not_o only_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o grace_n the_o read_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o daily_a prayer_n be_v want_v but_o the_o example_n of_o both_o head_n and_o member_n to_o influence_n to_o a_o imitation_n in_o lewdness_n drunkenness_n injustice_n curse_v swear_v and_o all_o impiety_n and_o where_o profaneness_n do_v so_o far_o prevail_v as_o to_o instigate_v they_o to_o break_v their_o jest_n upon_o religion_n and_o virtue_n alas_o it_o be_v a_o very_a difficult_a thing_n for_o youth_n to_o be_v thorough_o season_v with_o principle_n of_o virtue_n even_o by_o all_o the_o instruction_n and_o care_n of_o minister_n parent_n and_o master_n how_o then_o must_v it_o be_v next_o to_o a_o miracle_n if_o they_o fly_v not_o out_o into_o all_o manner_n of_o licentiousness_n when_o the_o corruption_n within_o be_v heighten_v with_o the_o example_n and_o encouragement_n of_o all_o about_o they_o and_o those_o too_o person_n upon_o who_o favour_n they_o depend_v innocence_n ii_o in_o the_o most_o irreligious_a family_n a_o servant_n shall_v happen_v into_o he_o must_v put_v on_o a_o steadfast_a resolution_n to_o preserve_v his_o innocence_n second_o but_o since_o idleness_n and_o want_n of_o employment_n do_v expose_v a_o person_n to_o temptation_n even_o more_o than_o such_o service_n and_o if_o necessity_n shall_v force_v you_o into_o those_o where_o little_a of_o spiritual_a improvement_n but_o all_o manner_n of_o temptation_n to_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v why_o then_o with_o joseph_n in_o the_o house_n of_o potiphar_n gen._n 39.8_o you_o must_v put_v on_o the_o most_o steadfast_a resolution_n to_o preserve_v your_o innocence_n and_o must_v make_v a_o covenant_n with_o your_o eye_n ear_n and_o all_o your_o sense_n that_o they_o do_v not_o offend_v and_o when_o divine_a providence_n have_v dispose_v you_o there_o divine_a grace_n will_v not_o be_v want_v to_o your_o own_o honest_a endeavour_n to_o preserve_v you_o from_o evil._n distress_n iii_o the_o state_n of_o celibacy_n advantageous_a to_o devotion_n &_o in_o time_n distress_n three_o the_o next_o state_n and_o that_o wherein_o the_o great_a part_n of_o mankind_n in_o this_o world_n be_v find_v be_v the_o state_n of_o celibacy_n or_o the_o single_a life_n and_o st._n paul_n speak_v to_o those_o which_o be_v unmarried_a tell_v they_o it_o be_v good_a for_o they_o if_o they_o abide_v so_o 1_o cor._n 7.8_o and_o that_o upon_o two_o account_n first_o at_o all_o time_n because_o of_o the_o great_a freedom_n and_o vacancy_n for_o meditation_n and_o divine_a employment_n therein_o he_o that_o be_v unmarried_a care_v for_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o lord_n how_o he_o may_v please_v the_o lord_n second_o and_o more_o especial_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n or_o the_o approach_n of_o suffering_n come_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o because_o of_o the_o present_a or_o impendent_a distress_n ver_fw-la 26._o but_o yet_o this_o state_n be_v the_o most_o subject_a to_o unchaste_a desire_n and_o lewd_a practice_n if_o not_o powerful_o restrain_v by_o root_a principle_n of_o virtue_n and_o therefore_o contain_v this_o must_v be_v renounce_v when_o person_n can_v contain_v even_o the_o state_n of_o celibacy_n itself_o must_v be_v renounce_v and_o forsake_v by_o those_o who_o can_v contain_v according_a to_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 7.9_o they_o who_o can_v contain_v let_v they_o marry_o for_o it_o be_v better_a to_o marry_o than_o to_o burn_v for_o alas_o when_o person_n moral_n be_v once_o corrupt_v in_o this_o kind_a it_o be_v very_o rare_a that_o either_o man_n or_o woman_n return_v to_o that_o just_a abomination_n and_o abhorrence_n which_o all_o christian_n ought_v to_o have_v of_o the_o very_a thought_n and_o expression_n of_o uncleanness_n according_a to_o that_o of_o st._n paul_n but_o fornication_n and_o all_o uncleanness_n let_v it_o not_o be_v once_o name_v among_o you_o as_o become_v saint_n neither_o filthiness_n nor_o foolish_a talk_v nor_o jesting_n which_o be_v not_o convenient_a eph._n 5.3_o 4._o advantage_n last_o the_o marry_a state_n have_v its_o advantage_n the_o last_o state_n of_o person_n i_o shall_v here_o mention_v be_v that_o of_o the_o marry_a a_o state_n ordain_v by_o god_n matth._n 19.4_o and_o the_o more_o to_o be_v like_v that_o beside_o the_o mutual_a support_v and_o comfort_n afford_v to_o each_o other_o therein_o many_o both_o husband_n and_o wife_n do_v owe_v their_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n and_o from_o a_o wicked_a to_o a_o good_a life_n to_o the_o prudent_a and_o discreet_a instruction_n of_o one_o or_o other_o of_o the_o marry_a couple_n 1_o cor._n 7.16_o nevertheless_o there_o be_v danger_n in_o this_o as_o well_o as_o in_o other_o state_n in_o time_n of_o distress_n they_o be_v apt_a to_o be_v tempter_n to_o one_o another_o to_o sinful_a compliance_n and_o at_o all_o time_n be_v plunge_v into_o worldly_a care_n and_o he_o that_o be_v marry_v care_v for_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o the_o world_n 1_o cor._n 7.33_o and_o that_o too_o often_o to_o the_o great_a hindrance_n of_o religion_n and_o therefore_o distress_n i._o all_o solicitation_n from_o either_o of_o the_o marry_a couple_n must_v be_v renounce_v which_o woul●_n persuade_v 〈◊〉_d sinful_a compliance_n in_o ●●●es_n of_o distress_n first_o all_o solicitation_n from_o either_o husband_n or_o wife_n must_v be_v utter_o renounce_v when_o out_o of_o worldly_a
regard_v either_o he_o or_o she_o will_v dissuade_v from_o a_o conscientious_a discharge_n of_o duty_n and_o a_o faithful_a confession_n of_o any_o part_n of_o christianity_n in_o which_o case_n we_o must_v even_o hate_v wife_n and_o child_n etc._n etc._n luk._n 14.26_o as_o have_v be_v already_o speak_v second_o and_o even_o in_o the_o marry_a state_n all_o those_o worldly_a care_n which_o choke_v up_o or_o disturb_v religion_n must_v be_v utter_o lay_v aside_o as_o will_v be_v full_o show_v you_o under_o the_o next_o and_o last_o of_o those_o thing_n pertain_v to_o this_o world_n which_o afford_v great_a matter_n of_o temptation_n to_o we_o viz._n the_o care_n thereof_o now_o as_o to_o the_o care_n of_o this_o world_n true_a it_o be_v we_o have_v many_o worldly_a interest_n and_o engagement_n to_o mind_n we_o have_v the_o necessity_n care_n ii_o and_o engage_v too_o much_o in_o worldly_a care_n both_o of_o our_o own_o person_n and_o of_o those_o who_o belong_v to_o we_o to_o serve_v nor_o be_v any_o thing_n prepare_v for_o we_o without_o industry_n and_o endeavour_n so_o that_o by_o the_o necessity_n of_o our_o condition_n we_o be_v every_o one_o of_o we_o more_o or_o less_o some_o in_o one_o way_n some_o in_o another_o engage_v in_o worldly_a affair_n hence_o it_o be_v necessary_a last_o the_o care_n of_o this_o world_n the_o last_o of_o those_o thing_n pertain_v to_o it_o in_o some_o measure_n necessary_a that_o some_o care_n about_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o world_n be_v allow_v we_o nay_o and_o indeed_o we_o be_v command_v to_o continue_v in_o the_o call_v wherein_o god_n have_v set_v we_o 1_o cor._n 7.20_o and_o we_o be_v warn_v that_o we_o be_v not_o slothful_a in_o business_n rom._n 12.11_o but_o the_o great_a unhappiness_n and_o sin_n of_o many_o in_o this_o difficult_a case_n be_v this_o that_o a_o moderate_a concern_v for_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o world_n be_v allowable_a they_o be_v apt_a to_o overwhelm_v themselves_o in_o a_o multiplicity_n of_o care_n as_o also_o to_o let_v the_o care_n of_o this_o world_n to_o alienate_v their_o affection_n from_o god_n and_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o to_o withdraw_v their_o attention_n from_o he_o in_o those_o divine_a service_n they_o be_v bind_v to_o pay_v he_o and_o few_o who_o be_v far_o engage_v in_o temporal_a design_n and_o care_n know_v when_o to_o retire_v from_o the_o world_n and_o to_o throw_v they_o off_o so_o as_o to_o give_v themselves_o a_o sufficient_a time_n to_o prepare_v for_o a_o better_a life_n but_o as_o necessary_a as_o worldly_a care_n be_v in_o most_o man_n circumstance_n yet_o first_o it_o become_v christian_n to_o renounce_v that_o multiplicity_n of_o care_n care_n i._o it_o become_v christian_n to_o renounce_v a_o multiplicity_n of_o care_n which_o distract_v their_o thought_n and_o show_v they_o to_o have_v no_o other_o aim_n but_o at_o this_o world_n and_o yet_o so_o it_o be_v that_o some_o man_n fill_v their_o head_n with_o innumerable_a project_n and_o do_v so_o overwhelm_v themselves_o with_o variety_n of_o business_n that_o they_o do_v scarce_o allow_v themselves_o time_n to_o eat_v and_o sleep_v but_o to_o be_v in_o a_o perpetual_a hurry_n after_o this_o world_n good_n and_o to_o be_v so_o over-solicitous_a for_o our_o future_a provision_n in_o it_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o man_n discontent_n with_o that_o condition_n wherein_o providence_n have_v place_v they_o and_o of_o a_o anxious_a fear_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v sufficient_o provide_v for_o by_o god_n blessing_n concur_v with_o a_o honest_a industry_n in_o their_o affair_n and_o be_v such_o a_o care_n as_o however_o it_o may_v become_v pagan_n who_o know_v little_a of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n providence_n in_o this_o life_n and_o of_o his_o treasure_n of_o bliss_n provide_v for_o we_o in_o another_o yet_o be_v infinite_o unbecoming_a christian_n who_o be_v thorough_o instruct_v in_o the_o divine_a providence_n and_o care_n over_o we_o and_o his_o future_a provision_n for_o we_o and_o be_v therefore_o so_o strict_o forbid_v we_o matth._n 6._o from_o the_o 24_o verse_n to_o the_o end_n second_o it_o behoove_v we_o christian_n so_o far_o to_o renounce_v any_o worldly_a care_n as_o it_o do_v alienate_v our_o affection_n from_o god_n and_o heavenly_a thing_n thing_n ii_o every_o worldly_a care_n so_o far_o as_o it_o do_v alienate_v our_o affection_n from_o god_n and_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o withdraw_v our_o attention_n from_o he_o in_o the_o service_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o pay_v he_o as_o be_v too_o often_o i_o say_v as_o be_v too_o often_o for_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o so_o many_o do_v neglect_v holy_a duty_n both_o public_a and_o private_a and_o that_o they_o perform_v either_o with_o so_o little_a devotion_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o many_o come_v so_o seldom_o to_o church_n or_o when_o they_o do_v that_o they_o carry_v themselves_o in_o the_o performance_n of_o prayer_n praise_n and_o at_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n with_o so_o much_o coldness_n laziness_n and_o want_v of_o attention_n and_o hence_o also_o it_o be_v that_o at_o home_o there_o be_v so_o seldom_o any_o family-prayer_n and_o read_v of_o the_o scripture_n and_o good_a book_n and_o i_o wish_v that_o rise_v up_o early_o and_o sit_v up_o late_o and_o eat_v the_o bread_n of_o carefulness_n may_v not_o hinder_v some_o from_o pay_v any_o devotion_n to_o god_n as_o much_o as_o private_o by_o themselves_o every_o morning_n and_o evening_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o least_o that_o can_v be_v imply_v in_o those_o precept_n of_o luk._n 18.1_o man_n ought_v always_o to_o pray_v and_o 1_o thes_n 5.17_o where_o we_o be_v enjoin_v to_o pray_v without_o cease_v and_o to_o be_v negligent_a or_o inattentive_a through_o the_o encumbrance_n of_o worldly_a care_n at_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n be_v the_o thing_n for_o which_o our_o saviour_n reprove_v martha_n who_o be_v cumbr_v herself_o with_o much_o serve_v when_o she_o ought_v to_o have_v listen_v to_o our_o saviour_n divine_a instruction_n as_o mary_n do_v for_o which_o he_o commend_v she_o luk._n 10.40_o 41_o 42._o and_o therefore_o it_o behoove_v every_o christian_a when_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o house_n of_o god_n or_o into_o his_o own_o closet_n whole_o to_o lay_v aside_o all_o worldly_a care_n for_o that_o time_n and_o to_o say_v to_o they_o as_o christ_n to_o his_o disciple_n stay_v you_o here_o whilst_o i_o go_v and_o pray_v yonder_o year_n last_o all_o manner_n of_o worldly_a care_n when_o advance_v in_o year_n last_o all_o person_n whether_o more_o or_o less_o engage_v in_o worldly_a care_n when_o grow_v in_o year_n shall_v whole_o in_o a_o manner_n throw_v they_o off_o and_o retire_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v from_o the_o world_n shall_v employ_v the_o remainder_n of_o their_o time_n in_o clear_v their_o account_n with_o god_n and_o man_n and_o in_o prepare_v themselves_o for_o the_o great_a trial_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v common_o observe_v that_o the_o far_a man_n advance_v in_o year_n the_o more_o covetous_a and_o worldly_a they_o grow_v but_o this_o be_v the_o most_o unreasonable_a and_o absurd_a thing_n that_o can_v be_v for_o what_o mean_v the_o care_n of_o this_o world_n but_o to_o provide_v for_o ourselves_o or_o posterity_n now_o as_o to_o ourselves_o the_o near_a life_n draw_v to_o a_o end_n the_o less_o of_o temporal_a provision_n be_v necessary_a and_o as_o to_o posterity_n the_o best_a provision_n that_o can_v be_v make_v for_o they_o be_v what_o may_v be_v enough_o to_o be_v a_o foundation_n for_o their_o industry_n and_o not_o so_o much_o as_o will_v disengage_v they_o from_o business_n and_o employment_n for_o to_o leave_v they_o great_a estate_n be_v but_o to_o expose_v they_o to_o the_o temptation_n of_o idleness_n luxury_n and_o the_o worst_a of_o sin_n to_o which_o as_o all_o man_n in_o great_a possession_n be_v liable_a so_o none_o more_o than_o such_o who_o have_v be_v sudden_o raise_v by_o the_o covetousness_n of_o a_o worldly_a miser_n as_o therefore_o those_o man_n of_o business_n who_o will_v be_v count_v the_o only_a wise_a will_v not_o show_v themselves_o in_o the_o end_n the_o great_a fool_n when_o they_o have_v advance_v far_o in_o year_n at_o leastwise_o they_o shall_v look_v upon_o that_o advice_n of_o the_o prophet_n as_o particular_o direct_v to_o they_o set_v thy_o house_n in_o order_n for_o thou_o shall_v sure_o die_v and_o not_o live_v such_o man_n have_v receive_v more_o talent_n than_o other_o and_o therefore_o they_o ought_v to_o take_v more_o time_n to_o state_n their_o account_n that_o they_o may_v come_v off_o at_o the_o great_a audit_n with_o the_o approbation_n of_o have_v be_v good_a and_o faithful_a servant_n in_o a_o word_n and_o to_o conclude_v this_o head_n the_o consideration_n of_o the_o world_n upon_o which_o we_o
be_v ready_a to_o call_v you_o ungrateful_a the_o most_o odious_a reproach_n that_o can_v be_v cast_v on_o any_o one_o nay_o and_o wicked_a man_n will_v not_o sometime_o stick_v to_o bribe_v you_o also_o with_o promise_n and_o proposal_n of_o profit_n and_o advantage_n if_o you_o will_v serve_v they_o in_o their_o ill_a design_n this_o one_o will_v think_v not_o so_o dangerous_a a_o temptation_n to_o sin_n because_o more_o open_a and_o not_o so_o insinuate_v a_o way_n as_o the_o former_a but_o god_n know_v too_o many_o do_v know_o and_o wilful_o barter_v away_o their_o poor_a soul_n and_o plain_o sell_v they_o to_o the_o devil_n contract_v to_o commit_v this_o or_o that_o sin_n as_o for_o instance_n to_o take_v a_o false_a oath_n to_o forge_v write_n to_o make_v a_o lie_n in_o another_o behalf_n upon_o the_o promise_n or_o intimation_n of_o some_o reward_n for_o so_o do_v thus_o will_v wicked_a man_n some_o by_o kindness_n some_o by_o promise_n oblige_v you_o if_o they_o can_v to_o serve_v they_o by_o your_o sin_n and_o some_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n will_v be_v no_o less_o industrious_a by_o discouragement_n nay_o threaten_n to_o hinder_v you_o in_o the_o discharge_n your_o duty_n and_o a_o good_a conscience_n religion_n will_v sometime_o put_v you_o upon_o do_v those_o thing_n that_o will_v prejudice_n your_o worldly_a interest_n and_o stir_v up_o the_o wrath_n of_o those_o that_o be_v superior_a to_o you_o and_o indeed_o in_o this_o case_n a_o man_n worst_a enemy_n shall_v be_v those_o of_o his_o own_o house_n and_o when_o either_o you_o must_v sin_n or_o suffer_v none_o will_v be_v so_o forward_o to_o tempt_v you_o to_o sin_n rather_o than_o to_o suffer_v as_o your_o near_a relation_n and_o acquaintance_n and_o what_o must_v wife_n and_o child_n and_o family_n do_v if_o you_o shall_v talk_v of_o forsake_v all_o and_o of_o follow_v christ_n in_o the_o preservation_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n will_v be_v the_o argument_n that_o the_o friend_n of_o your_o own_o bosom_n will_v strong_o urge_v you_o withal_o but_o the_o more_o common_a temptation_n discourage_v man_n in_o the_o discharge_v of_o their_o duty_n especial_o such_o as_o be_v of_o a_o low_a rank_n and_o condition_n in_o the_o world_n be_v the_o frown_n and_o threat_n of_o those_o that_o be_v above_o '_o they_o hence_o a_o minister_n in_o low_a circumstance_n shall_v venture_v hard_a if_o he_o offer_v to_o reprove_v a_o great_a man_n though_o a_o great_a sinner_n and_o you_o shall_v scarce_o ever_o know_v a_o officer_n though_o never_o so_o strict_o oblige_v thereunto_o by_o his_o oath_n present_a in_o order_n to_o punishment_n the_o man_n of_o power_n and_o interest_n in_o his_o parish_n for_o his_o oath_n his_o riot_n and_o the_o most_o outrageous_a immorality_n which_o he_o so_o scandalous_o commit_v sin_n i._o kindness_n must_v not_o corrupt_v we_o to_o sin_n and_o now_o what_o shall_v be_v do_v with_o reference_n to_o these_o manifold_a encouragemetn_n to_o sin_n and_o discouragement_n to_o virtue_n which_o you_o shall_v meet_v withal_o from_o wicked_a man_n why_o in_o the_o first_o place_n have_v a_o special_a care_n you_o be_v not_o inveigle_v by_o the_o pretend_a kindness_n of_o any_o person_n be_v he_o who_o or_o what_o he_o will_n let_v not_o the_o obligation_n of_o your_o friend_n or_o acquaintance_n cause_v you_o to_o strain_v truth_n when_o you_o be_v call_v to_o give_v testimony_n in_o his_o cause_n take_v care_n you_o be_v not_o then_o wrought_v upon_o by_o any_o sense_n of_o kindness_n to_o perjure_n yourselves_o for_o he_o by_o declare_v either_o more_o than_o truth_n or_o by_o speak_v not_o the_o whole_a truth_n when_o it_o will_v make_v against_o he_o consider_v what_o kindness_n have_v be_v do_v you_o if_o you_o must_v sin_n against_o god_n and_o your_o own_o soul_n to_o pleasure_v your_o friend_n in_o return_n for_o it_o it_o be_v but_o a_o bait_n to_o take_v you_o a_o snare_z to_o entrap_v you_o and_o a_o pleasant_a poison_n give_v to_o destroy_v you_o you_o ought_v indeed_o as_o a_o honest_a pagan_n say_v excellent_o well_o to_o be_v assistant_n to_o he_o in_o his_o honest_a endeavour_n but_o not_o in_o his_o knavery_n in_o his_o counsel_n not_o in_o his_o trick_n in_o appear_v as_o evidence_n for_o he_o but_o not_o in_o a_o cheat_n and_o you_o must_v bear_v a_o share_n in_o the_o misfortune_n of_o your_o friend_n but_o not_o in_o his_o act_n of_o injustice_n we_o ii_o promise_n must_v not_o bribe_v we_o second_o as_o to_o any_o promise_n wherewith_o wicked_a man_n may_v so_o tempt_v you_o as_o to_z hire_v you_o to_o sin_n god_n forbid_v there_o shall_v be_v a_o necessity_n to_o bid_v you_o reject_v and_o detest_v they_o but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o need_n to_o fortify_v any_o here_o against_o such_o a_o temptation_n the_o mere_a foolishness_n of_o the_o bargain_n you_o will_v make_v will_v sufficient_o move_v you_o to_o spurn_v at_o they_o for_o if_o it_o be_v a_o unprofitable_a a_o very_a unprofitable_a bargain_n though_o a_o man_n shall_v gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o soul_n as_o it_o be_v say_v mark_v 8.36_o oh_o what_o ill_a husbandry_n what_o stupidity_n be_v it_o for_o a_o trifle_n of_o worldly_a wealth_n or_o advantage_n to_o barter_v it_o away_o duty_n iii_o discouragement_n must_v not_o hinder_v we_o from_o discharge_v our_o duty_n and_o three_o as_o for_o those_o who_o shall_v hereafter_o discourage_v you_o from_o suffer_v for_o righteousness_n sake_n when_o call_v thereunto_o by_o lay_v before_o you_o the_o ruin_n you_o will_v thereby_o bring_v upon_o yourselves_o and_o family_n why_o you_o must_v consider_v that_o in_o such_o case_n our_o saviour_n tell_v we_o that_o a_o man_n must_v even_o hate_v father_n and_o mother_n and_o wife_n and_o child_n and_o brethren_n and_o sister_n yea_o and_o his_o own_o life_n also_o or_o he_o can_v be_v his_o disciple_n and_o that_o whosoever_o do_v not_o bear_v his_o cross_n and_o come_v after_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v his_o disciple_n luk._n 14.26_o 27._o it_o nor_o four_o must_v threaten_n or_o frown_v fright_v we_o from_o it_o nor_o last_o must_v a_o soldier_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v fright_v out_o of_o the_o way_n of_o his_o duty_n or_o awe_v into_o any_o sinful_a or_o slavish_a compliance_n by_o the_o threat_n and_o frown_n of_o any_o man_n live_v shrink_v not_o from_o the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n and_o uprightness_n because_o many_o about_o you_o and_o they_o perhaps_o above_o or_o rich_a than_o you_o be_v profane_a and_o lewd_a and_o utter_o regardless_o of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a and_o moreover_o do_v discourage_v and_o affront_v it_o for_o this_o if_o you_o shall_v you_o will_v most_o certain_o offend_v your_o great_a lord_n and_o master_n the_o lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o who_o have_v call_v upon_o you_o not_o to_o fear_v a_o mortal_a man_n no_o though_o he_o can_v kill_v the_o body_n but_o to_o be_v afraid_a of_o displease_v he_o rather_o who_o be_v able_a to_o destroy_v both_o body_n and_o soul_n in_o hell_n yea_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o fear_v he_o luk._n 12.4_o and_o now_o last_o i_o can_v call_v to_o mind_n any_o other_o temptation_n sin_n last_o the_o evil_a custom_n which_o have_v prevail_v in_o the_o world_n be_v a_o powerful_a temptation_n to_o sin_n usual_a among_o wicked_a man_n to_o tempt_v other_o to_o sin_n beside_o some_o evil_a custom_n so_o rife_o among_o many_o that_o the_o heathen_a idolatry_n and_o those_o filthy_a practice_n commit_v in_o they_o be_v so_o universal_o comply_v with_o by_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n in_o the_o pagan_a world_n be_v because_o they_o be_v commend_v and_o establish_v by_o public_a custom_n many_o of_o their_o wise_a man_n and_o philosopher_n have_v other_o conception_n of_o god_n than_o to_o think_v it_o be_v fit_a to_o change_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n into_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o ox_n that_o eat_v grass_n and_o think_v also_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v worship_v not_o by_o foolery_n and_o impurity_n but_o with_o a_o chaste_a mind_n and_o a_o clean_a heart_n and_o yet_o even_o those_o man_n submit_v to_o common_a custom_n and_o whatever_o they_o think_v or_o speak_v private_o among_o themselves_o they_o act_v and_o speak_v in_o public_a as_o the_o rest_n do_v and_o it_o be_v to_o the_o prevalency_n of_o custom_n that_o the_o apostle_n impute_v those_o enormity_n of_o the_o ephesian_n before_o their_o conversion_n tell_v they_o that_o in_o time_n pass_v they_o walk_v according_a to_o the_o course_n of_o this_o world_n eph._n 2.2_o and_o indeed_o so_o great_a be_v the_o power_n of_o evil_a custom_n that_o it_o do_v still_o among_o christian_n constrain_v person_n to_o do_v many_o ill_a thing_n even_o contrary_a to_o their_o nature_n and_o inclination_n as_o well_o
appease_v his_o neighbour_n and_o be_v reconcile_v to_o he_o for_o so_o our_o saviour_n have_v order_v matth._n 5.23_o before_o he_o offer_v his_o prayer_n to_o god_n and_o he_o that_o have_v injure_v his_o neighbour_n either_o by_o take_v away_o his_o good_a name_n by_o slander_n or_o his_o good_n by_o wrong_a deal_v must_v take_v off_o the_o slander_n and_o restore_v what_o he_o have_v unjust_o get_v and_o so_o do_v good_a zacheus_n upon_o his_o repentance_n we_o find_v luke_n 19.8_o when_o he_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n and_o so_o likewise_o towards_o the_o reparation_n of_o god_n honour_n repentance_n of_o high_a dishonour_v to_o god_n and_o religion_n if_o that_o be_v not_o repair_v by_o a_o eminent_a repentance_n i_o must_v needs_o add_v as_o a_o necessary_a part_n of_o repentance_n that_o he_o who_o have_v former_o live_v a_o very_a notorious_a and_o scandalous_o ill_a life_n to_o the_o great_a dishonour_n of_o god_n and_o religion_n must_v now_o towards_o the_o reparation_n of_o god_n honour_n be_v as_o famous_a for_o his_o eminent_a and_o exemplary_a piety_n that_o his_o repentance_n may_v be_v accept_v a_o private_a sorrow_n for_o public_a scandal_n fall_v vast_o short_a of_o undo_v what_o have_v be_v do_v amiss_o in_o which_o consist_v the_o restitutive_a part_n of_o repentance_n the_o necessity_n of_o this_o we_o have_v exemplify_v in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o woman_n who_o wash_v our_o saviour_n foot_n with_o her_o tear_n and_o wipe_v they_o with_o the_o hair_n of_o her_o head_n luke_n 7.44_o she_o have_v former_o it_o seem_v be_v a_o very_a vile_a woman_n but_o the_o reason_n why_o her_o sin_n which_o be_v many_o be_v forgive_v be_v say_v by_o our_o saviour_n to_o have_v be_v because_o she_o love_v much_o vers_n 47._o and_o thus_o if_o we_o do_v repent_v our_o sin_n shall_v not_o be_v impute_v to_o we_o but_o through_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o shall_v be_v look_v upon_o as_o if_o they_o have_v never_o be_v and_o thus_o i_o have_v show_v you_o that_o other_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o that_o obedience_n require_v now_o under_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o the_o obedience_n require_v by_o the_o first_o covenant_n that_o whereas_o the_o obedience_n require_v by_o the_o first_o be_v a_o perfect_a exact_a vnsinning_a obedience_n the_o never_o offend_a at_o all_o now_o not_o only_o our_o involuntary_a sin_n and_o infirmity_n but_o also_o our_o most_o voluntary_a and_o wilful_a transgression_n when_o by_o repentance_n we_o bewail_v and_o forsake_v they_o and_o take_v better_a care_n to_o avoid_v they_o for_o the_o future_a they_o also_o through_o the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o term_n he_o have_v obtain_v for_o we_o in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n shall_v be_v forgive_v we_o and_o not_o prejudice_v our_o be_v inheritor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o upon_o the_o whole_a i_o have_v now_o show_v you_o obedience_n the_o sum_n of_o evangelical_n obedience_n as_o to_o all_o that_o obedience_n require_v now_o under_o the_o gospel_n to_o make_v we_o inheritor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n that_o there_o be_v not_o require_v indeed_o a_o perfect_a exact_a unsinning_a obedience_n the_o never_o offend_v in_o any_o one_o part_n which_o be_v the_o indispensible_a condition_n of_o the_o first_o covenant_n but_o there_o must_v be_v a_o sincere_a and_o entire_a obedience_n pay_v to_o all_o the_o law_n of_o the_o gospel_n sincere_a it_o must_v be_v by_o be_v a_o true_a and_o undissembled_a service_n obey_v they_o not_o only_o because_o most_o for_o our_o health_n and_o interest_n as_o general_o the_o law_n of_o religion_n be_v but_o even_o where_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o our_o inclination_n and_o interest_n because_o god_n command_v we_o and_o entire_a it_o must_v be_v by_o be_v the_o obedience_n of_o the_o whole_a man_n of_o our_o understanding_n our_o will_n our_o affection_n and_o our_o action_n to_o the_o whole_a law_n of_o god_n and_o that_o at_o all_o time_n and_o this_o if_o we_o endeavour_v the_o best_a we_o can_v to_o do_v that_o our_o unwilling_a and_o involuntary_a fail_n which_o through_o ignorance_n and_o frailty_n we_o commit_v shall_v upon_o our_o prayer_n to_o god_n be_v forgive_v we_o and_o that_o our_o wilful_a transgression_n when_o we_o repent_v of_o and_o forsake_v they_o through_o the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v not_o be_v impute_v to_o our_o condemnation_n hammond_n the_o sum_n also_o thereof_o according_a to_o dr._n hammond_n in_o a_o word_n that_o obedience_n to_o speak_v also_o in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o learned_a dr._n hammond_n which_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o second_o covenant_n and_o of_o our_o be_v make_v inheritor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n negative_o it_o be_v not_o a_o perfect_a exact_a unsinning_a obedience_n the_o never_o offend_v at_o all_o in_o any_o kind_n of_o sin_n this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o first_o covenant_n nor_o second_o be_v it_o never_o to_o have_v commit_v any_o deliberate_a sin_n in_o the_o former_a course_n of_o our_o life_n nor_o three_o never_o to_o have_v go_v on_o or_o continue_v in_o any_o habitual_a or_o customary_a sin_n for_o the_o time_n past_a but_o it_o be_v positive_o the_o new_a creature_n or_o renew_v sincere_a honest_a faithful_a obedience_n to_o the_o whole_a gospel_n give_v up_o the_o whole_a heart_n unto_o christ_n the_o perform_n of_o that_o which_o god_n enable_v we_o to_o perform_v and_o bewail_v our_o infirmity_n and_o frailty_n and_o sin_n both_o of_o the_o past_a and_o present_a life_n and_o beseech_v god_n pardon_n in_o christ_n for_o all_o such_o and_o sincere_o labour_v to_o mortify_v every_o sin_n and_o to_o perform_v a_o uniform_a obedience_n to_o god_n and_o from_o every_o fall_n rise_v again_o by_o repentance_n and_o thus_o if_o we_o obey_v god_n holy_a will_n and_o commandment_n and_o walk_v in_o the_o same_o all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n we_o shall_v not_o fail_v to_o be_v inheritor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o thus_o i_o have_v full_o explain_v to_o you_o all_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n both_o on_o god_n part_n and_o on_o we_o both_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v a_o member_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v the_o mercy_n and_o favour_n make_v over_o to_o we_o therein_o on_o god_n part_n and_o what_o it_o be_v to_o renounce_v the_o devil_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v the_o condition_n to_o be_v perform_v on_o we_o my_o next_o task_n must_v be_v and_o then_o i_o shall_v give_v you_o a_o full_a account_n of_o all_o that_o pertain_v to_o the_o nature_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n to_o show_v you_o what_o a_o happy_a state_n of_o salvation_n this_o be_v to_o be_v in_o such_o a_o gracious_a covenant_n with_o god_n by_o who_o mediation_n we_o obtain_v it_o by_o who_o and_o how_o we_o be_v call_v into_o it_o and_o last_o what_o infinite_a thanks_o we_o owe_v to_o god_n for_o call_v we_o into_o this_o state_n of_o salvation_n all_o which_o point_n we_o have_v teach_v we_o in_o these_o word_n and_o i_o thank_v god_n our_o heavenly_a father_n that_o he_o have_v call_v i_o to_o this_o state_n of_o salvation_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n the_o xxiv_o lecture_n and_o i_o hearty_o thank_v our_o heavenly_a father_n that_o he_o have_v call_v i_o to_o this_o state_n of_o salvation_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n i_o have_v already_o in_o order_n to_o a_o full_a explication_n of_o all_o that_o pertain_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n give_v you_o a_o account_n of_o the_o term_n and_o condition_n of_o it_o both_o on_o god_n part_n and_o on_o we_o as_o they_o be_v lay_v down_o and_o teach_v you_o in_o your_o church-catechism_n the_o invaluable_a privilege_n on_o god_n part_n make_v over_o to_o you_o therein_o as_o you_o be_v teach_v in_o your_o catechism_n and_o i_o have_v explain_v they_o to_o you_o be_v first_o that_o you_o be_v therein_o make_v member_n of_o christ_n second_o child_n of_o god_n and_o three_o inheritor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o those_o condition_n to_o be_v perform_v by_o we_o our_o part_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v that_o we_o shall_v first_o renounce_v the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o work_n the_o pomp_n and_o vanity_n of_o this_o wicked_a world_n and_o all_o the_o sinful_a lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n second_o that_o we_o shall_v believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o three_o that_o we_o shall_v keep_v god_n holy_a will_n and_o commandment_n and_o walk_v in_o the_o same_o all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n and_o what_o each_o several_a article_n in_o this_o your_o gracious_a covenant_n do_v mean_a and_o import_v
punishment_n in_o another_o world_n and_o all_o or_o most_o of_o the_o duty_n of_o morality_n also_o have_v the_o light_n of_o nature_n or_o our_o own_o reason_n both_o direct_n and_o enforce_v the_o practice_n of_o '_o they_o only_o our_o natural_a reason_n in_o this_o our_o corrupt_a state_n be_v a_o candle_n that_o burn_v very_o dim_a we_o must_v i_o say_v have_v our_o eye_n principal_o upon_o the_o light_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o singular_a gift_n of_o god_n give_v to_o conduct_v we_o safe_a through_o the_o intricate_a maze_n and_o difficulty_n of_o this_o world_n to_o another_o and_o that_o a_o better_a to_o be_v a_o light_n unto_o our_o foot_n and_o a_o lantern_n unto_o our_o path_n that_o our_o footstep_n may_v not_o slide_v psal_n 119.105_o and_o a_o most_o perfect_a rule_v the_o scripture_n be_v it_o be_v give_v by_o inspiration_n of_o god_n and_o be_v profitable_a for_o doctrine_n for_o reproof_n for_o correction_n for_o instruction_n in_o righteousness_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_a thorough_o furnish_v unto_o all_o good_a work_n 2_o tim._n 3.16_o 17._o but_o though_o natural_a reason_n now_o in_o its_o eclipse_n by_o sin_n yield_v not_o light_a enough_o of_o itself_o without_o the_o help_n of_o divine_a revelation_n to_o guide_v we_o unto_o happiness_n yet_o so_o far_o as_o it_o can_v direct_v we_o and_o be_v agreeable_a to_o scripture_n light_n we_o be_v to_o follow_v its_o guidance_n it_o be_v as_o well_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n as_o the_o other_o and_o be_v give_v we_o to_o the_o same_o end_n and_o purpose_n and_o we_o be_v therefore_o to_o bless_v god_n for_o so_o excellent_a a_o gift_n as_o our_o reason_n and_o must_v follow_v its_o dictate_v without_o go_v contrary_a to_o the_o reason_n within_o we_o in_o whatsoever_o it_o do_v prescribe_v we_o that_o be_v not_o contradict_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o where_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v not_o thwart_v our_o own_o reason_n in_o that_o case_n be_v leave_v by_o god_n in_o its_o original_a authority_n which_o it_o have_v before_o divine_a revelation_n and_o we_o be_v to_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o the_o divine_a will_n and_o pleasure_n that_o we_o shall_v act_v what_o seem_v but_o reasonable_a and_o hence_o we_o find_v that_o our_o bless_a saviour_n himself_o and_o his_o apostle_n do_v often_o appeal_v to_o our_o own_o reason_n as_o a_o guide_n we_o ought_v to_o follow_v thus_o luke_n 12.57_o yea_o and_o why_o even_o of_o yourselves_o judge_v you_o not_o what_o be_v right_a say_v he_o to_o the_o pharisee_n and_o indeed_o in_o one_o of_o the_o most_o important_a case_n that_o be_v ever_o put_v to_o any_o decision_n the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o john_n do_v appeal_n to_o man_n own_o reason_n to_o determine_v they_o what_o they_o shall_v do_v the_o ruler_n of_o the_o jew_n call_v they_o and_o command_v they_o not_o to_o speak_v at_o all_o nor_o to_o teach_v in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n but_o peter_n and_o john_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o whether_o it_o be_v right_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n to_o hearken_v unto_o you_o more_o than_o unto_o god_n judge_v you_o act_v 4.18_o 19_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o here_o call_v in_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n to_o justify_v they_o in_o what_o they_o do_v but_o do_v appeal_v to_o their_o own_o reason_n and_o the_o 1_o cor._n 10._o the_o apostle_n undertake_v to_o convince_v they_o how_o ill_o a_o thing_n it_o be_v for_o they_o to_o partake_v of_o thing_n offer_v to_o idol_n how_o do_v he_o go_v about_o to_o do_v it_o why_o say_v he_o i_o speak_v unto_o wise_a man_n judge_v you_o what_o i_o say_v verse_n 15._o and_o so_o go_v on_o by_o many_o argument_n fetch_v from_o the_o nature_n and_o reason_n of_o sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n to_o prove_v that_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o partake_v of_o two_o such_o different_a one_o as_o the_o table_n of_o god_n and_o the_o table_n of_o devil_n verse_n 21._o appoint_v 3._o religious_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n leave_v to_o the_o reason_n and_o discretion_n of_o church-governor_n to_o appoint_v 3._o there_o be_v beside_o these_o necessary_a and_o essential_a part_n of_o religion_n other_o but_o appendage_n or_o certain_a modes_n and_o circumstance_n retain_v to_o it_o such_o be_v those_o ceremony_n appoint_v by_o authority_n for_o the_o great_a solemnity_n of_o divine_a administration_n and_o the_o determine_v what_o these_o be_v to_o be_v be_v plain_o permit_v to_o the_o reason_n and_o discretion_n of_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n as_o may_v be_v fair_o conclude_v from_o 1_o cor._n 11.13_o 14_o 18._o where_o the_o apostle_n make_v reason_n the_o sole_a judge_n that_o must_v be_v submit_v to_o in_o point_n of_o decency_n and_o order_n the_o case_n before_o the_o apostle_n be_v whether_o woman_n ought_v to_o appear_v veil_v in_o the_o church_n and_o how_o do_v he_o prove_v it_o why_o from_o reason_n and_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n and_o he_o severe_o twit_v those_o as_o perverse_a person_n that_o in_o such_o case_n will_v not_o be_v govern_v by_o such_o argument_n judge_v in_o yourselves_o be_v it_o comely_a that_o a_o woman_n pray_v with_o her_o head_n uncover_v do_v not_o even_a nature_n that_o be_v custom_n itself_o teach_v you_o but_o if_o any_o man_n be_v contentious_a we_o have_v no_o such_o custom_n nor_o the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o be_v if_o people_n will_v be_v so_o perverse_a i_o think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o tell_v they_o as_o that_o which_o ought_v to_o govern_v they_o the_o nature_n and_o reason_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n be_v against_o '_o they_o so_o that_o reason_n you_o see_v be_v not_o exclude_v from_o judge_v what_o be_v fit_a and_o proper_a to_o be_v do_v in_o point_n of_o decency_n and_o order_n and_o for_o the_o great_a solemnity_n of_o divine_a administration_n and_o therefore_o have_v show_v you_o what_o reason_n the_o church_n have_v to_o appoint_v godfather_n and_o godmother_n not_o only_o as_o proxy_n to_o represent_v the_o infant_n but_o as_o surety_n to_o engage_v for_o it_o in_o baptism_n i_o need_v not_o much_o to_o insist_v on_o other_o argument_n in_o justification_n of_o that_o usage_n of_o the_o church_n but_o however_o that_o no_o scruple_n may_v remain_v if_o possible_a in_o any_o honest_a mind_n that_o will_v be_v convince_v for_o a_o far_a justification_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n and_o expedience_n of_o they_o i._o i_o will_v prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n scripture_n i._o that_o christ_n give_v commission_n to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o institute_v such_o usage_n as_o shall_v be_v for_o decency_n and_o order_n and_o the_o better_a edification_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n prove_v from_o scripture_n that_o there_o have_v be_v a_o power_n and_o authority_n give_v by_o christ_n to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o appoint_v such_o reasonable_a circumstance_n as_o they_o shall_v think_v fit_a for_o the_o great_a order_n and_o decency_n of_o divine_a administration_n and_o the_o better_a edification_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o men._n and_o then_o ii_o i_o will_v show_v you_o that_o their_o appoint_v of_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n be_v a_o most_o excellent_a and_o useful_a institution_n to_o this_o purpose_n and_o first_o i_o will_v prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n that_o there_o have_v be_v a_o power_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v a_o thing_n very_o well_o worth_a the_o consideration_n of_o all_o person_n what_o observance_n our_o bless_a saviour_n pay_v to_o those_o circumstantial_a appointment_n relate_v to_o divine_a worship_n which_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n without_o any_o far_a authority_n from_o scripture_n than_o the_o general_a commission_n and_o power_n it_o give_v governor_n to_o exercise_v have_v of_o their_o own_o self_n order_v there_o be_v as_o little_o need_v one_o will_v have_v think_v in_o that_o church_n as_o any_o church_n this_o allow_v to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n for_o its_o governor_n to_o appoint_v any_o new_a mode_n or_o ceremony_n of_o worship_n god_n himself_o have_v give_v they_o such_o very_a particular_a order_n relate_v to_o divine_a service_n but_o as_o little_a need_n as_o there_o seem_v to_o be_v of_o they_o they_o however_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o appoint_v many_o thing_n beside_o what_o god_n himself_o have_v ordain_v and_o yet_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o conform_v to_o they_o in_o his_o own_o practice_n as_o appear_v from_o his_o celebrate_v the_o feast_n of_o dedication_n john_n 10.22_o 23._o which_o be_v a_o festival_n of_o mere_a humane_a institution_n in_o memory_n of_o their_o deliverance_n from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n and_o the_o purge_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o altar_n from_o his_o idolatry_n but_o moreover_o he_o command_v his_o follower_n
call_v a_o good_a name_n and_o be_v more_o valuable_a than_o riches_n or_o precious_a ointment_n 161_o it_o be_v a_o more_o peculiar_a blessing_n than_o any_o the_o great_a treasure_n and_o procure_v better_a security_n to_o our_o person_n and_o estate_n it_o be_v a_o necessary_a qualification_n to_o the_o episcopal_a promotion_n it_o be_v comfortable_a to_o a_o man_n be_v own_o self_n 162_o and_o smell_v sweet_a in_o the_o world_n it_o render_v a_o person_n capable_a of_o do_v good_a in_o it_o and_o active_a in_o promote_a it_o a_o desire_n of_o reputation_n and_o credit_n be_v a_o thing_n implant_v in_o our_o nature_n by_o god_n and_o to_o preserve_v a_o reputation_n untainted_a and_o unsuspected_a of_o evil_a be_v a_o duty_n enjoin_v we_o by_o his_o law_n 163_o nevertheless_o even_o a_o good_a name_n be_v in_o some_o measure_n to_o be_v renounce_v by_o we_o and_o the_o temptation_n it_o give_v we_o as_o first_o we_o must_v so_o far_o renounce_v the_o honour_n that_o shall_v accrue_v to_o we_o from_o our_o good_a work_n as_o not_o to_o make_v our_o own_o glory_n the_o end_n and_o reason_n of_o any_o good_a we_o do_v 164_o second_o we_o must_v not_o affect_v but_o renounce_v those_o praise_n which_o be_v above_o our_o desert_n three_o we_o must_v beware_v of_o take_v the_o honour_n and_o respect_n give_v we_o for_o any_o worthy_a performance_n whole_o to_o ourselves_o and_o of_o not_o transfer_v it_o to_o god_n to_o who_o the_o glory_n of_o all_o that_o be_v good_a in_o we_o do_v proper_o belong_v 165_o four_o we_o must_v abhor_v make_v a_o reputation_n for_o religion_n a_o instrument_n only_o to_o our_o own_o advancement_n but_o must_v use_v the_o authority_n our_o credit_n give_v we_o to_o discountenance_v vice_n and_o to_o encourage_v virtue_n in_o the_o world_n 166_o five_o as_o valuable_a as_o be_v a_o good_a name_n and_o reputation_n among_o man_n we_o must_v renounce_v all_o undue_a mean_n of_o preserve_v it_o such_o be_v duel_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o slander_n among_o the_o great_a one_o go_v to_o law_n thereupon_o usual_a among_o common_a people_n last_o we_o must_v utter_o renounce_v and_o forfeit_v the_o esteem_n of_o man_n rather_o than_o incur_v the_o disfavour_n of_o god_n 167_o four_o how_o far_o that_o honour_n be_v to_o be_v renounce_v which_o consist_v in_o the_o applause_n of_o the_o vulgar_a upon_o what_o they_o do_v account_v praiseworthy_a and_o honourable_a 168_o this_o sort_n of_o honour_n must_v be_v utter_o and_o absolute_o renounce_v last_o in_o what_o sense_n and_o how_o far_o we_o must_v renounce_v these_o outward_a expression_n of_o respect_n either_o by_o word_n or_o deed_n which_o be_v usual_o give_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o any_o of_o the_o forementioned_a honour_n 169_o first_o no_o create_a be_v either_o man_n or_o angel_n must_v suffer_v those_o respect_n to_o be_v give_v they_o whether_o by_o word_n or_o deed_n which_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o signify_v our_o sense_n of_o god_n majesty_n and_o perfection_n woman_n therefore_o must_v with_o detestation_n renounce_v those_o blasphemous_a compliment_n wherein_o divine_a perfection_n be_v usual_o ascribe_v to_o they_o second_o every_o man_n must_v renounce_v and_o refuse_v those_o title_n and_o respect_n and_o precedency_n which_o be_v not_o his_o due_n but_o belong_v to_o person_n above_o he_o 170_o last_o and_o must_v in_o modesty_n humility_n and_o good_a manner_n decline_v his_o due_n in_o this_o kind_n and_o must_v renounce_v the_o entitle_n of_o himself_o and_o permit_v that_o to_o other_o objection_n against_o receive_v title_n of_o honour_n respect_n and_o precedency_n answer_v 171_o lect_n xvi_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n in_o what_o sense_n and_o how_o far_o they_o be_v to_o be_v renounce_v first_o rational_a pleasure_n be_v very_o excellent_a and_o allowable_a 173_o but_o first_o no_o man_n must_v make_v mere_a pleasure_n the_o end_n of_o his_o knowledge_n nor_o second_o must_v that_o satisfaction_n and_o delight_n which_o arise_v from_o the_o sense_n and_o conscience_n of_o good_a and_o worthy_a deed_n be_v so_o much_o because_o we_o be_v admire_v and_o applaud_v for_o it_o as_o because_o they_o be_v real_o in_o themselves_o virtuous_a second_o sensitive_a pleasure_n which_o result_v from_o the_o suitableness_n between_o the_o perceptive_a faculty_n and_o the_o object_n that_o affect_v they_o be_v lawful_a 174_o these_o pleasure_n unlawful_a only_a when_o they_o become_v three_o sensual_a as_o first_o when_o we_o prefer_v they_o in_o our_o judgement_n or_o desire_n either_o before_o our_o spiritual_a joy_n in_o god_n or_o the_o eternal_a joy_n of_o his_o kingdom_n 175_o second_o when_o a_o man_n relish_v no_o enjoyment_n like_o those_o of_o sense_n three_o when_o he_o glut_v himself_o so_o as_o to_o surfeit_v on_o these_o sweet_n and_o last_o when_o the_o deliciousness_n of_o these_o pleasure_n cause_v he_o to_o load_v and_o burden_n his_o nature_n therewith_o so_o as_o to_o render_v he_o unfit_a for_o the_o duty_n of_o his_o call_v and_o religion_n recreative_a pleasure_n of_o a_o middle_n and_o indifferent_a nature_n 176_o the_o most_o innocent_a thereof_o be_v to_o be_v spare_o use_v 177_o the_o evil_n of_o the_o world_n be_v poverty_n disgrace_n and_o affliction_n poverty_n and_o affliction_n instead_o of_o temptation_n to_o sin_n and_o hindrance_n to_o virtue_n do_v very_o often_o prove_v mortifier_n to_o vice_n and_o the_o great_a occasion_n of_o a_o holy_a life_n 178_o nevertheless_o they_o be_v often_o great_a temptation_n to_o many_o sin_n and_o impiety_n first_o it_o behoove_v those_o who_o labour_n under_o poverty_n or_o any_o kind_n of_o affliction_n to_o beware_v of_o impatience_n and_o discontent_n second_o those_o in_o the_o worst_a of_o circumstance_n must_v not_o envy_v the_o outward_a felicity_n of_o the_o wicked_a three_o a_o person_n that_o be_v poor_a must_v be_v infinite_o careful_a lest_o to_o rescue_v himself_o out_o of_o it_o he_o be_v tempt_v to_o fraud_n especial_o to_o steal_v and_o purloin_v 179_o nor_n last_o must_v any_o think_v that_o because_o they_o be_v poor_a they_o be_v ever_o the_o more_o dis-engaged_n from_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o their_o attendance_n upon_o he_o in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o divine_a worship_n in_o what_o sense_n and_o how_o far_o we_o must_v renounce_v disgrace_n and_o the_o temptation_n it_o give_v we_o 180_o first_o the_o calling_n of_o the_o world_n and_o how_o the_o temptation_n they_o give_v be_v to_o be_v renounce_v every_o man_n be_v to_o betake_v himself_o to_o some_o business_n it_o must_v be_v such_o as_o providence_n have_v fit_v he_o with_o ability_n for_o and_o such_o he_o be_v preparative_o call_v and_o appoint_v to_o by_o god_n with_o due_a ability_n 181_o to_o whatsoever_o call_v he_o be_v appoint_v he_o must_v employ_v himself_o therein_o to_o god_n glory_n and_o his_o own_o and_o the_o public_a good_n first_o all_o person_n must_v renounce_v such_o calling_n and_o profession_n as_o be_v direct_o sinful_a and_o wicked_a second_o such_o as_o tend_v to_o the_o hurt_a not_o the_o good_a of_o the_o public_a 182_o three_o all_o sinful_a art_n in_o the_o most_o useful_a calling_n 183_o four_o all_o levity_n and_o desultory_n skip_v from_o one_o call_v to_o another_o 185_o five_o any_o call_v whatsoever_o be_v to_o be_v decline_v for_o which_o a_o person_n be_v not_o qualify_v both_o by_o education_n ability_n and_o inclination_n especial_o calling_n of_o great_a importance_n such_o as_o the_o ministry_n 186_o sixthly_a idleness_n in_o any_o call_v be_v to_o be_v renounce_v idleness_n not_o allowable_a no_o not_o in_o gentleman_n 187_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a temptation_n in_o the_o world_n to_o sin_n and_o be_v itself_o a_o very_a great_a sin_n last_o no_o man_n must_v live_v above_o his_o call_v 188_o second_o among_o those_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n of_o a_o middle_a nature_n the_o different_a condition_n and_o state_n of_o man_n therein_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v first_o a_o master_n have_v great_a advantage_n of_o do_v good_n but_o all_o that_o dominion_n be_v to_o be_v utter_o renounce_v among_o christian_n which_o treat_v servant_n no_o better_o than_o slave_n and_o brute_n the_o state_n of_o servant_n not_o in_o itself_o unhappy_a first_o it_o concern_v every_o person_n who_o be_v to_o live_v by_o a_o service_n to_o avoid_v such_o where_o there_o be_v neither_o the_o mean_n of_o religion_n nor_o restraint_n upon_o sin_n 189_o second_o in_o the_o most_o irreligious_a family_n a_o servant_n shall_v happen_v into_o he_o must_v put_v on_o a_o steadfast_a resolution_n to_o preserve_v his_o innocence_n three_o the_o state_n of_o celibacy_n advantageous_a to_o devotion_n and_o in_o time_n of_o distress_n this_o must_v be_v renounce_v when_o person_n can_v contain_v last_o the_o marry_a state_n
deny_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v his_o know_v of_o or_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v with_o you_o as_o he_o declare_v he_o will_v matth._n 10.33_o you_o see_v in_o matth._n 26.70_o how_o peter_n be_v ashamed_a of_o his_o persecute_a lord_n and_o master_n and_o afraid_a for_o himself_o do_v deny_v his_o saviour_n but_o withal_o you_o see_v how_o severe_o he_o smart_v for_o it_o for_o be_v prick_v at_o the_o heart_n with_o a_o extreme_a remorse_n of_o conscience_n for_o such_o a_o base_a piece_n of_o cowardice_n he_o go_v out_o and_o weep_v bitter_o v._o 75._o and_o it_o be_v well_o he_o do_v or_o else_o he_o have_v perish_v everlasting_o so_o that_o to_o conclude_v you_o must_v not_o only_o rehearse_v that_o be_v give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n to_o we_o the_o minister_n of_o religion_n and_o pronounce_v it_o among_o those_o who_o be_v friend_n to_o it_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n but_o upon_o all_o just_a occasion_n you_o must_v elsewhere_o even_o in_o the_o face_n of_o its_o great_a enemy_n open_o declare_v and_o profess_v your_o belief_n of_o those_o great_a christian_a truth_n and_o that_o when_o you_o be_v sure_a to_o suffer_v the_o severe_a persecution_n and_o reproach_n for_o so_o do_v this_o last_o i_o must_v confess_v be_v not_o so_o direct_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n rehearse_v in_o this_o place_n but_o if_o ever_o there_o be_v occasion_n to_o extend_v the_o importance_n of_o it_o to_o such_o a_o sense_n it_o be_v now_o when_o the_o confidence_n of_o infidel_n in_o profess_v their_o impious_a principle_n and_o the_o cowardice_n of_o believer_n in_o confess_v the_o true_a article_n of_o their_o christian_a faith_n be_v so_o extreme_o and_o on_o both_o side_n so_o shameful_o great_a and_o thus_o i_o have_v give_v you_o the_o utmost_a that_o i_o conceive_v can_v be_v the_o importance_n of_o these_o word_n rehearse_v the_o article_n of_o thy_o belief_n which_o may_v serve_v as_o a_o prefatory_a discourse_n to_o the_o exposition_n i_o design_v by_o god_n assistance_n to_o make_v you_o of_o the_o creed_n upon_o the_o explication_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v next_o enter_v the_o xxix_o lecture_n i_o believe_v comment_v upon_o these_o word_n rehearse_v the_o article_n of_o thy_o belief_n i_o have_v give_v you_o by_o way_n of_o preface_n to_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n itself_o a_o account_n of_o its_o authority_n how_o that_o it_o be_v a_o summary_n abridgement_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n collect_v as_o be_v high_o probable_a by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o however_o undoubted_o contain_v the_o most_o weighty_a and_o essential_a point_n of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v in_o order_n to_o salvation_n and_o then_o as_o to_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o word_n rehearse_v i_o have_v tell_v you_o how_o necessary_a it_o be_v 1._o that_o you_o shall_v give_v a_o good_a account_n to_o god_n minister_n of_o what_o you_o believe_v 2._o that_o you_o ought_v open_o and_o solemn_o to_o pronounce_v your_o belief_n every_o time_n you_o meet_v together_o to_o worship_n god_n in_o the_o public_a assembly_n nay_o and_o 3._o that_o you_o must_v undaunted_o confess_v and_o own_o all_o these_o christian_a truth_n before_o the_o face_n of_o any_o man_n though_o you_o shall_v incur_v the_o great_a danger_n of_o life_n livelihood_n or_o whatever_o be_v most_o dear_a to_o you_o or_o expose_v yourselves_o to_o the_o reproach_n of_o wicked_a man_n for_o so_o do_v and_o have_v thus_o by_o way_n of_o preface_n to_o the_o creed_n itself_o speak_v what_o i_o think_v necessary_a to_o its_o authority_n and_o the_o confession_n you_o be_v to_o make_v of_o it_o i_o come_v now_o by_o god_n assistance_n to_o lay_v open_a before_o you_o the_o mean_v and_o importance_n of_o every_o particular_a truth_n therein_o contain_v and_o that_o which_o do_v first_o offer_v itself_o to_o our_o consideration_n and_o will_v indeed_o require_v a_o very_a large_a and_o full_a explication_n be_v the_o single_a word_n believe_v every_o particular_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o every_o single_a truth_n as_o there_o be_v many_o contain_v in_o each_o article_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o we_o it_o be_v therefore_o i_o presume_v very_o requisite_a that_o we_o shall_v with_o all_o possible_a clearness_n and_o exactness_n explain_v the_o nature_n of_o faith_n and_o show_v you_o what_o it_o be_v to_o believe_v to_o your_o soul_n health_n before_o we_o come_v to_o consider_v the_o several_a truth_n that_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v according_o faith_n and_o belief_n be_v two_o word_n that_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n term_n faith_n and_o belief_n synonomous_a term_n and_o so_o indispensable_a a_o condition_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o salvation_n it_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o not_o to_o mention_v more_o text_n rom._n 3.28_o it_o be_v say_v a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n and_o mark_v 16.16_o we_o be_v tell_v in_o plain_a and_o express_v word_n that_o he_o who_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v but_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v you_o must_v not_o therefore_o think_v i_o tedious_a if_o in_o the_o explication_n of_o this_o point_n i_o shall_v be_v something_o large_a since_o to_o believe_v be_v a_o thing_n which_o you_o be_v not_o only_o to_o do_v in_o reference_n to_o every_o particular_a article_n of_o our_o creed_n but_o that_o also_o as_o ever_o you_o will_v be_v justify_v and_o save_v and_o for_o the_o more_o full_a explication_n of_o this_o point_n i_o will_v do_v these_o three_o thing_n i._o i_o will_v show_v you_o in_o general_n what_o it_o be_v to_o believe_v together_o with_o the_o effect_n and_o fruit_n of_o true_a believe_v ii_o i_o will_v more_o particular_o explain_v unto_o you_o the_o nature_n of_o justify_v and_o save_v faith_n and_o then_o iii_o by_o way_n of_o inference_n i_o will_v lay_v before_o you_o wherein_o the_o defect_n of_o several_a sort_n of_o faith_n do_v lie_v which_o we_o find_v by_o scripture_n and_o experience_n that_o many_o do_v rely_v upon_o but_o yet_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n justify_v and_o save_v '_o they_o and_o 1._o i_o be_o to_o show_v you_o in_o general_a what_o it_o be_v to_o believe_v and_o to_o believe_v both_o in_o the_o proper_a and_o in_o the_o common_a mean_v of_o the_o word_n be_v to_o give_v credit_n to_o the_o report_n of_o another_o testimony_n faith_n be_v found_v upon_o a_o credible_a testimony_n and_o herein_o it_o be_v distinguish_v from_o those_o other_o act_n of_o the_o mind_n opinion_n experience_n and_o knowledge_n that_o opinion_n be_v when_o one_o vary_v in_o his_o judgement_n be_v not_o without_o some_o doubt_n whether_o the_o thing_n may_v not_o be_v otherwise_o than_o he_o think_v experience_n be_v when_o one_o own_o sense_n tell_v one_o it_o be_v so_o and_o so_o and_o knowledge_n be_v when_o i_o gather_v from_o undoubted_a cause_n and_o reason_n that_o the_o effect_n be_v thus_o but_o belief_n as_o it_o be_v more_o certain_a than_o opinion_n so_o it_o be_v found_v not_o upon_o my_o own_o experience_n and_o knowledge_n but_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o some_o one_o else_o who_o do_v relate_v the_o thing_n to_o i_o it_o be_v indeed_o think_v by_o some_o that_o to_o believe_v in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o plain_a man_n speak_v to_o the_o general_a bulk_n of_o mankind_n do_v many_o time_n signify_v a_o full_a persuasion_n of_o the_o mind_n whether_o wrought_v within_o we_o by_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o matter_n or_o by_o our_o own_o sense_n or_o experience_n or_o by_o some_o strong_a argument_n and_o reason_n as_o well_o as_o by_o some_o credible_a testimony_n and_o according_o we_o believe_v god_n be_v and_o existence_n by_o the_o strong_a evidence_n of_o reason_n but_o yet_o however_o though_o the_o belief_n of_o god_n be_v be_v indeed_o a_o knowledge_n that_o he_o be_v a_o knowledge_n i_o say_v that_o we_o have_v from_o several_a demonstrative_a proof_n and_o reason_n beside_o what_o we_o have_v from_o the_o testimony_n that_o he_o himself_o have_v give_v we_o of_o his_o own_o existence_n yet_o as_o the_o testimony_n that_o he_o have_v give_v we_o by_o miracle_n prophecy_n and_o his_o providence_n be_v proper_o his_o attestation_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o article_n so_o it_o be_v the_o near_a and_o the_o plain_a proof_n thereof_o and_o that_o upon_o which_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o mankind_n who_o do_v not_o much_o employ_v their_o reason_n to_o search_v after_o truth_n be_v found_v so_o that_o general_o as_o well_o as_o proper_o speak_v to_o believe_v be_v to_o give_v credit_n upon_o the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o another_o that_o his_o relation_n be_v true_a testimony_n human_a faith_n upon_o human_a testimony_n and_o
be_v less_o efficacious_a to_o the_o subdue_a the_o temptation_n arise_v from_o the_o flesh_n that_o be_v from_o our_o own_o lust_n and_o appetite_n there_o be_v no_o consideration_n of_o that_o force_n to_o oblige_v we_o to_o deny_v all_o ungodliness_n and_o worldly_a lust_n and_o to_o live_v sober_o righteous_o and_o godly_a in_o this_o present_a world_n as_o all_o the_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n particular_o the_o look_v for_o that_o bless_a hope_n and_o the_o glorious_a appear_v of_o the_o great_a god_n and_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n who_o give_v himself_o for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o purify_v to_o himself_o a_o peculiar_a people_n zealous_a of_o good_a work_n tit._n 2.12_o 13_o 14._o a_o thorough_a persuasion_n apply_v home_o to_o the_o heart_n by_o serious_a consideration_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v himself_o descend_v from_o heaven_n by_o wonderful_a and_o amaze_a method_n to_o rescue_v we_o from_o the_o slavery_n of_o our_o brutish_a lust_n and_o appetite_n and_o that_o he_o will_v again_o come_v in_o glory_n to_o judge_n and_o reward_v we_o for_o the_o victory_n we_o shall_v gain_v over_o they_o be_v enough_o to_o work_v upon_o all_o reasonable_a and_o think_v creature_n and_o nothing_o can_v prevail_v with_o we_o to_o abandon_v our_o lust_n if_o these_o will_v not_o and_o iii_o last_o but_o above_o all_o deu●●_n 3._o the_o deu●●_n the_o great_a power_n and_o the_o glorious_a effect_n of_o faith_n be_v see_v in_o the_o victory_n it_o will_v enable_v we_o to_o obtain_v over_o that_o great_a adversary_n the_o devil_n we_o have_v need_v to_o put_v on_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v against_o the_o wiles_n of_o the_o devil_n for_o we_o wrestle_v not_o against_o flesh_n and_o blood_n a_o contemptible_a enemy_n in_o comparison_n but_o against_o principality_n against_o power_n against_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o darkness_n of_o this_o world_n against_o spiritual_a wickedness_n in_o high_a place_n wherefore_o st._n paul_n do_v warn_v we_o to_o take_v unto_o we_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o withstand_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n and_o have_v do_v all_o to_o stand_v but_o above_o all_o to_o take_v the_o shield_n of_o faith_n wherewith_o we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o quench_v all_o the_o fiery_a dart_n of_o the_o devil_n eph._n 6.11_o 12._o the_o temptation_n and_o assault_n of_o the_o devil_n which_o the_o apostle_n do_v here_o so_o solemn_o rouse_v we_o up_o to_o resist_v be_v i_o suppose_v the_o terrible_a persecution_n that_o satan_n do_v in_o all_o age_n raise_v against_o one_o part_n or_o other_o of_o the_o church_n and_o these_o though_o dreadful_a indeed_o and_o most_o likely_a to_o overpower_v we_o yet_o be_v conquerable_a by_o a_o firm_a faith_n look_v unto_o jesus_n the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n who_o for_o the_o joy_n that_o be_v set_v before_o he_o endure_v the_o cross_n despise_v the_o shame_n and_o be_v set_v down_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n for_o if_o we_o consider_v he_o that_o endure_v such_o contradiction_n of_o sinner_n against_o himself_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v weary_a nor_o faint_a in_o our_o mind_n heb._n 12.2_o 3._o so_o that_o in_o short_a the_o true_a and_o genuine_a effect_n of_o faith_n be_v constant_a and_o perpetual_a victory_n against_o the_o world_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o devil_n and_o a_o universal_a obedience_n notwithstanding_o any_o of_o they_o to_o the_o command_v of_o god_n and_o therefore_o since_o so_o much_o depend_v upon_o a_o true_a faith_n that_o he_o who_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v mark_v 16.16_o and_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n eph._n 2.5_o it_o do_v infinite_o concern_v you_o to_o examine_v yourselves_o whether_o you_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o to_o prove_v yourselves_o 2_o cor._n 13.5_o and_o the_o only_a way_n to_o prove_v the_o sincerity_n of_o your_o faith_n be_v by_o examine_v the_o forementioned_a fruit_n of_o it_o in_o your_o own_o life_n and_o conversation_n and_o by_o see_v whether_o it_o produce_v a_o good_a life_n for_o this_o we_o may_v assure_v ourselves_o have_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o apostle_n for_o it_o jam._n 2.26_o that_o as_o the_o body_n without_o the_o spirit_n be_v dead_a so_o faith_n without_o work_n be_v dead_a also_o so_o that_o except_o upon_o examination_n you_o shall_v find_v your_o spiritual_a enemy_n in_o a_o great_a measure_n subdue_v and_o a_o habit_n of_o virtue_n root_v in_o your_o soul_n your_o faith_n be_v not_o sincere_a the_o xxx_o lecture_n i_o believe_v have_v already_o explain_v and_o lay_v before_o you_o the_o nature_n and_o effect_n of_o faith_n or_o believe_v i_o may_v now_o proceed_v to_o the_o consideration_n of_o those_o main_a fundamental_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n sum_v up_o in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v according_o but_o since_o so_o great_a weight_n be_v lay_v in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n upon_o faith_n that_o on_o condition_n thereof_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v save_v sir_n say_v the_o keeper_n of_o the_o prison_n to_o paul_n and_o silas_n what_o must_v i_o do_v to_o be_v save_v and_o they_o say_v believe_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o thy_o house_n act._n 16.30_o 31._o since_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o christ_n shall_v receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n c._n 10_o 43._o and_o which_o have_v most_o perplex_a person_n head_n to_o understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o it_o and_o from_o the_o misunderstanding_n of_o which_o the_o most_o fatal_a error_n have_v ensue_v since_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n rom._n 3.28_o and_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n we_o have_v peace_n with_o god_n through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n rom._n 5.1_o and_o last_o since_o a_o true_a state_n of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o justify_v faith_n will_n above_o any_o other_o single_a doctrine_n except_v that_o of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n let_v you_o into_o the_o full_a understanding_n of_o the_o nature_n texture_n and_o constitution_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a religion_n for_o all_o these_o reason_n i_o think_v i_o ought_v not_o to_o dismiss_v this_o subject_a of_o faith_n without_o give_v you_o a_o state_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justify_v faith_n and_o without_o distinguish_v betwixt_o it_o and_o other_o sort_n of_o faith_n which_o will_v fail_v we_o in_o the_o great_a business_n of_o justification_n and_o salvation_n and_o in_o order_n to_o the_o explication_n of_o so_o considerable_a a_o point_n i._o i_o will_v give_v you_o to_o understand_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o justification_n ii_o i_o will_v then_o show_v by_o what_o sort_n of_o faith_n we_o be_v according_o j●nstified_v and_o iii_o and_o last_o in_o what_o sense_n we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n and_o i._o i_o will_v give_v you_o to_o understand_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o justification_n define_v justification_n define_v and_o justification_n be_v god_n adjudge_v we_o through_o christ_n as_o just_a and_o righteous_a according_a to_o the_o term_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o his_o acquit_v of_o such_o from_o the_o punishment_n of_o those_o sin_n of_o which_o according_a to_o the_o term_n of_o the_o first_o covenant_n there_o be_v no_o place_n for_o pardon_n to_o make_v this_o description_n more_o plain_a to_o you_o i_o will_v a_o little_a enlarge_v upon_o it_o and_o prove_v the_o several_a part_n thereof_o and_o fall_n 1._o there_o be_v just_a and_o righteous_a person_n since_o the_o fall_n first_o i_o say_v there_o be_v those_o who_o even_o in_o this_o lapse_v and_o fall_v state_n of_o man_n have_v the_o testimony_n of_o god_n himself_o that_o they_o be_v just_a and_o righteous_a men._n thus_o abel_n obtain_v witness_v that_o he_o be_v righteous_a god_n testify_v of_o his_o gift_n heb._n 11.4_o and_o lot_n be_v also_o mention_v in_o scripture_n as_o a_o righteous_a man_n 2_o pet._n 2.8_o and_o joseph_n simeon_n cornelius_n and_o other_o be_v say_v in_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v just_a man_n and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o angel_n shall_v come_v forth_o and_o separate_v the_o wicked_a from_o the_o just_a matth._n 13.49_o which_o suppose_v that_o all_o those_o who_o shall_v be_v save_v shall_v be_v just_a and_o righteous_a person_n such_o 2._o it_o be_v according_a to_o the_o term_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o any_o be_v such_o second_o those_o who_o be_v thus_o just_a and_o righteous_a be_v such_o according_a to_o the_o term_n of_o the_o gospel_n justice_n and_o righteousness_n be_v to_o be_v measure_v according_a to_o some_o rule_n in_o conformity_n to_o which_o
commission_n for_o decency_n and_o order_n in_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n not_o otherwise_o to_o be_v provide_v for_o and_o indeed_o it_o be_v hardly_o possible_a that_o provision_n can_v be_v make_v for_o the_o decency_n and_o order_n of_o divine_a administration_n any_o other_o way_n than_o by_o commit_v it_o to_o the_o prudence_n and_o discretion_n of_o the_o governor_n in_o every_o national_a church_n to_o appoint_v those_o thing_n for_o the_o modes_n and_o expression_n of_o decency_n and_o order_n be_v infinite_o different_a in_o several_a country_n so_o that_o one_o thing_n shall_v be_v a_o signification_n of_o reverence_n and_o respect_n in_o the_o eastern_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o a_o quite_o contrary_a in_o the_o western_a and_o the_o same_o observance_n may_v not_o tend_v to_o edification_n in_o one_o age_n even_o in_o the_o same_o country_n as_o in_o another_o for_o the_o humour_n of_o man_n be_v extreme_o subject_a to_o change_v in_o this_o matter_n so_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a the_o appointment_n of_o mere_a ceremonial_a and_o circumstantial_a thing_n shall_v be_v lest_o to_o the_o discretion_n of_o church-governor_n to_o order_n or_o to_o alter_v according_a to_o the_o exigency_n and_o condition_n of_o time_n and_o place_n so_o that_o it_o appear_v to_o i_o to_o be_v sufficient_o plain_a that_o there_o have_v be_v a_o power_n and_o authority_n give_v by_o christ_n to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o appoint_v such_o reasonable_a circumstance_n as_o they_o shall_v think_v fit_a for_o the_o better_a order_n and_o decency_n of_o divine_a administration_n and_o the_o better_a edification_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o men._n and_o now_o edification_n ii_o the_o appointment_n of_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n a_o most_o useful_a institution_n to_o the_o foresay_a purpose_n of_o decency_n order_n and_o edification_n second_o i_o be_o to_o show_v you_o that_o their_o appoint_v of_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n be_v a_o most_o excellent_a and_o useful_a institution_n to_o this_o purpose_n that_o be_v that_o it_o be_v a_o appointment_n that_o contribute_v much_o to_o the_o decent_a administration_n of_o baptism_n and_o it_o be_v also_o very_o serviceable_a to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o baptise_a member_n of_o christ_n church_n how_o decent_a and_o orderly_a and_o like_a to_o the_o transact_n of_o a_o covenant_n it_o render_v the_o administration_n of_o baptism_n i_o have_v already_o tell_v you_o but_o that_o it_o be_v very_o serviceable_a to_o the_o edification_n of_o person_n baptise_a i_o will_v far_o declare_v unto_o you_o and_o this_o sure_o must_v needs_o be_v own_a if_o we_o consider_v 1._o the_o nature_n of_o their_o office_n and_o 2._o the_o good_a effect_n we_o often_o see_v of_o person_n have_v have_v godfather_n and_o godmother_n as_o surety_n for_o they_o in_o their_o baptism_n office_n first_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o nature_n of_o their_o office_n and_o first_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o nature_n of_o their_o office_n how_o can_v we_o but_o expect_v from_o they_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o good_a as_o to_o person_n edification_n for_o by_o the_o nature_n of_o their_o office_n be_v they_o not_o person_n that_o be_v solemn_o engage_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a congregation_n then_o assemble_v and_o this_o to_o god_n himself_o that_o they_o will_v take_v a_o special_a and_o particular_a care_n of_o that_o person_n then_o enter_v by_o their_o mean_n into_o the_o society_n of_o christian_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v true_o inform_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o covenant_n and_o what_o obligation_n lie_v upon_o he_o to_o discharge_v those_o duty_n contain_v in_o it_o and_o which_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v on_o his_o part_n as_o he_o will_v expect_v to_o share_v in_o those_o unspeakable_a good_a thing_n promise_v on_o god_n part_n and_o be_v not_o such_o a_o solemn_a engagement_n to_o god_n make_v by_o the_o surety_n in_o such_o a_o presence_n and_o in_o such_o a_o place_n and_o before_o such_o a_o number_n of_o witness_n likely_a to_o make_v man_n careful_a to_o be_v as_o good_a as_o their_o promise_n and_o this_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v and_o shall_v according_o take_v care_n if_o there_o be_v any_o occasion_n for_o it_o by_o the_o parent_n neglect_v to_o have_v the_o child_n catechise_v and_o instruct_v in_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o shall_v reprove_v he_o for_o his_o miscarriage_n and_o exhort_v he_o to_o a_o circumspect_a walk_n with_o god_n and_o never_o leave_v off_o till_o they_o have_v bring_v he_o at_o year_n of_o understanding_n before_o the_o chief_a minister_n of_o christ_n church_n the_o bishop_n there_o solemn_o and_o serious_o to_o profess_v in_o his_o own_o person_n that_o he_o will_v do_v so_o and_o so_o as_o they_o have_v engage_v in_o his_o name_n if_o this_o they_o shall_v do_v be_v not_o this_o the_o likely_a way_n in_o the_o world_n to_o train_v up_o a_o child_n in_o the_o knowledge_n and_o love_n and_o fear_v of_o god_n in_o which_o consist_v his_o edification_n why_o the_o thing_n i_o suppose_v will_v be_v ready_o grant_v that_o the_o office_n be_v consider_v in_o itself_o the_o institution_n of_o godmother_n and_o godmother_n may_v be_v very_o useful_a to_o people_n edification_n if_o surety_n will_v but_o take_v a_o due_a care_n if_o there_o shall_v be_v occasion_n of_o the_o christian_a edification_n and_o conversation_n of_o such_o who_o they_o have_v engage_v for_o we_o only_o want_v to_o see_v the_o good_a effect_n of_o such_o their_o undertake_n which_o god_n know_v say_v some_o be_v but_o small_a for_o who_o be_v it_o say_v they_o do_v we_o see_v take_v any_o care_n of_o any_o such_o thing_n this_o be_v what_o be_v common_o urge_v against_o this_o institution_n by_o those_o who_o be_v not_o well-affected_a to_o this_o nor_o any_o other_o constitution_n of_o our_o church_n and_o as_o weak_a as_o this_o exception_n be_v many_o think_v it_o a_o sufficient_a plea_n against_o have_v godfather_n and_o godmother_n in_o baptism_n but_o i_o will_v desire_v such_o person_n to_o consider_v that_o if_o the_o abuse_n of_o any_o ordinance_n by_o person_n that_o be_v profane_a and_o careless_a be_v a_o sufficient_a reason_n against_o it_o we_o must_v even_o abolish_v the_o sacrament_n themselves_o for_o how_o many_o be_v there_o who_o come_v unprepared_a and_o unworthy_o partake_v of_o they_o not_o regard_v what_o obligation_n they_o have_v lay_v upon_o themselves_o in_o the_o use_n of_o they_o to_o be_v good_a liver_n ever_o afterward_o and_o the_o very_a gospel_n itself_o though_o a_o savour_n of_o life_n unto_o life_n unto_o some_o few_o who_o live_v according_a to_o its_o rule_n be_v a_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n unto_o those_o and_o they_o be_v the_o great_a number_n unto_o who_o it_o be_v preach_v and_o yet_o lead_v lewd_a and_o profligate_v life_n but_o this_o be_v by_o accident_n and_o through_o man_n own_o fault_n that_o neither_o the_o gospel_n can_v persuade_v nor_o the_o sacrament_n engage_v some_o man_n to_o obedience_n and_o for_o that_o they_o must_v answer_v themselves_o and_o both_o the_o gospel_n and_o its_o sacrament_n must_v notwithstanding_o be_v continue_v in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o good_a they_o be_v capable_a of_o work_v and_o the_o good_a they_o actual_o do_v effect_n to_o some_o few_o and_o so_o ought_v the_o institution_n of_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n in_o its_o own_o nature_n it_o be_v a_o office_n fit_v to_o do_v good_a and_o though_o many_o do_v not_o that_o good_a they_o ought_v under_o that_o character_n yet_o on_o the_o score_n of_o that_o good_a it_o may_v do_v and_o those_o good_a effect_n we_o real_o see_v it_o sometime_o do_v do_v it_o ought_v for_o that_o reason_n to_o be_v continue_v in_o the_o church_n i_o say_v second_o it_o second_o those_o good_a effect_n of_o it_o on_o the_o score_n of_o those_o good_a effect_n we_o sometime_o see_v it_o real_o do_v do_v for_o this_o i_o be_o well_o assure_v of_o and_o i_o have_v know_v myself_o many_o instance_n of_o person_n who_o owe_v that_o understanding_n they_o have_v of_o religion_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n pure_o next_o under_o god_n to_o the_o care_n of_o their_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n who_o have_v bring_v they_o up_o to_o read_v bestow_v good_a book_n upon_o they_o give_v good_a advice_n unto_o they_o and_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v confirm_v when_o nothing_o of_o this_o will_v have_v be_v take_v care_n of_o by_o their_o careless_a loose_a and_o ignorant_a parent_n and_o i_o do_v not_o question_v but_o among_o the_o many_o neglect_v there_o be_v thousand_o of_o like_a instance_n in_o the_o nation_n of_o person_n who_o have_v be_v happy_o bring_v up_o to_o a_o good_a understanding_n and_o sense_n of_o religion_n by_o the_o sole_a care_n of_o their_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n and_o then_o
i_o be_o sure_a so_o precious_a be_v one_o soul_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n that_o the_o institution_n that_o shall_v contribute_v to_o the_o salvation_n of_o many_o shall_v be_v of_o no_o small_a account_n with_o he_o church_n which_o good_a effect_n will_v be_v much_o great_a be_v the_o choice_n of_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n make_v according_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o the_o edification_n of_o very_a many_o more_o i_o be_o sure_a this_o ordinance_n will_v contribute_v if_o that_o choice_n be_v make_v of_o person_n for_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n which_o the_o church_n prescribe_v for_o as_o our_o most_o excellent_a church_n have_v take_v a_o admirable_a care_n of_o her_o child_n in_o provide_v security_n for_o their_o good_a education_n and_o christian_a behaviour_n so_o to_o make_v that_o security_n as_o good_a as_o possible_a and_o that_o they_o may_v be_v such_o as_o will_v be_v most_o likely_a to_o have_v that_o care_n of_o those_o they_o stand_v for_o she_o ordain_v in_o her_o 24_o canon_n that_o no_o person_n shall_v be_v admit_v to_o be_v godfather_n and_o godmother_n to_o any_o child_n at_o a_o christen_n or_o confirmation_n before_o the_o say_a person_n so_o undertake_v have_v receive_v the_o holy_a communion_n and_o now_o if_o all_o parent_n will_v provide_v such_o only_a and_o all_o minister_n will_v receive_v none_o other_o but_o who_o have_v communicate_v than_o we_o shall_v see_v much_o better_a effect_n of_o this_o institution_n and_o that_o it_o will_v minister_v very_o considerable_o to_o edification_n for_o then_o the_o ungodly_a crew_n that_o never_o approach_v the_o holy_a altar_n be_v exclude_v there_o will_v none_o but_o person_n of_o a_o tolerable_a good_a sense_n of_o religion_n themselves_o be_v surety_n for_o other_o and_o from_o such_o we_o may_v expect_v a_o discharge_n of_o their_o obligation_n but_o if_o parent_n have_v other_o respect_n than_o the_o good_a of_o their_o child_n soul_n will_v only_o provide_v such_o as_o be_v likely_a to_o make_v the_o infant_n a_o good_a present_n or_o leave_v it_o a_o legacy_n or_o bestow_v handsome_o on_o midwife_n and_o nurse_n let_v they_o be_v never_o so_o loose_a and_o lewd_a or_o mere_a child_n or_o otherwise_o unqualify_v than_o no_o wonder_n if_o we_o see_v few_o good_a effect_n of_o this_o excellent_a institution_n which_o in_o itself_o be_v admirable_o well_o fit_v to_o promote_v edification_n but_o then_o this_o be_v the_o fault_n of_o parent_n not_o of_o the_o church_n and_o notwithstanding_o this_o the_o appointment_n of_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n as_o surety_n in_o baptism_n aught_o to_o be_v consider_v as_o a_o thing_n of_o a_o very_a useful_a tendency_n as_o to_o the_o more_o decent_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n so_o to_o the_o better_a edification_n of_o the_o person_n baptise_a to_o which_o purpose_n according_a to_o the_o power_n give_v they_o by_o christ_n the_o governor_n of_o our_o church_n have_v appoint_v it_o conclusion_n the_o conclusion_n and_o thus_o in_o comment_v upon_o the_o preliminary_a question_n and_o answer_n of_o the_o catechism_n i_o have_v at_o length_n go_v through_o all_o those_o head_n of_o discourse_n i_o do_v at_o first_o propose_v to_o speak_v to_o in_o order_n to_o give_v you_o a_o full_a understanding_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n that_o covenant_n you_o enter_v into_o with_o god_n in_o your_o baptism_n for_o i._o as_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o covenant_n i_o have_v in_o the_o first_o place_n explain_v to_o you_o the_o term_n and_o condition_n of_o it_o both_o on_o god_n part_n and_o on_o we_o in_o the_o second_o place_n i_o have_v lay_v before_o you_o the_o gracious_a importance_n of_o this_o covenant_n show_v you_o how_o that_o it_o be_v a_o state_n of_o salvation_n three_o i_o have_v account_v for_o the_o original_a of_o it_o and_o by_o who_o mediation_n you_o obtain_v such_o term_n of_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n and_o that_o it_o be_v through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n i_o have_v four_o acquaint_v you_o by_o who_o and_o how_o you_o have_v be_v call_v to_o this_o state_n of_o salvation_n that_o it_o be_v your_o heavenly_a father_n who_o have_v call_v you_o to_o this_o state_n of_o salvation_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o last_o have_v admonish_v you_o of_o the_o very_a great_a reason_n you_o have_v to_o thank_v god_n and_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n for_o so_o exceed_o great_a a_o mercy_n as_o his_o call_v you_o into_o it_o so_o far_o i_o have_v let_v you_o into_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o ii_o have_v do_v this_o i_o have_v declare_v to_o you_o by_o what_o sacrament_n or_o solemnity_n you_o enter_v into_o it_o iii_o i_o have_v show_v you_o the_o vast_a obligation_n lie_v upon_o you_o faithful_o to_o discharge_v your_o covenant_n with_o god_n iv_o i_o have_v direct_v you_o by_o what_o mean_v you_o may_v perform_v it_o and_o last_o that_o nothing_o may_v be_v want_v full_o to_o inform_v you_o in_o all_o that_o pertain_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o covenant_n i_o have_v now_o inform_v you_o in_o those_o two_o circumstance_n relate_v to_o your_o entrance_n into_o it_o the_o time_n when_o and_o the_o person_n by_o who_o you_o be_v initiate_v therein_o these_o last_o point_n indeed_o i_o think_v once_o to_o have_v defer_v the_o treat_v upon_o till_o i_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o last_o part_n of_o the_o catechism_n but_o though_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o divine_a assistance_n and_o prayer_n may_v be_v treat_v upon_o when_o i_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o lord's-prayer_n and_o the_o question_n which_o lead_v to_o it_o yet_o as_o they_o be_v the_o necessary_a mean_n of_o enable_v we_o to_o perform_v our_o covenant_n with_o god_n they_o ought_v at_o leastwise_o to_o be_v general_o consider_v here_o and_o even_o the_o doctrine_n of_o infant_n baptism_n and_o the_o use_n of_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n though_o there_o be_v a_o question_n and_o answer_v more_o direct_a upon_o both_o at_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o catechism_n yet_o the_o positive_a handle_n of_o they_o be_v proper_a in_o this_o place_n and_o whatever_o objection_n can_v be_v raise_v against_o either_o will_v most_o natural_o be_v handle_v upon_o these_o word_n why_o then_o be_v infant_n baptise_a when_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o tender_a age_n they_o can_v perform_v they_o the_o answer_n to_o which_o be_v because_o they_o promise_v they_o both_o by_o their_o surety_n which_o promise_v when_o they_o come_v to_o age_n themselves_o be_v bind_v to_o perform_v there_o be_v a_o objection_n and_o solution_n in_o these_o word_n and_o therefore_o they_o will_v be_v the_o fit_a to_o found_v a_o discourse_n upon_o consist_v of_o the_o like_a however_o i_o think_v the_o general_a doctrine_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n can_v not_o have_v be_v handle_v in_o all_o its_o part_n without_o the_o consideration_n of_o these_o latter_a point_n and_o that_o i_o think_v may_v be_v sufficient_a to_o justify_v we_o in_o treat_v upon_o they_o here_o so_o as_o to_o give_v you_o a_o general_a view_n as_o of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n so_o of_o all_o that_o pertain_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o and_o now_o what_o remain_v but_o that_o you_o serious_o reflect_v upon_o all_o that_o have_v be_v deliver_v upon_o this_o most_o important_a subject_n of_o your_o baptismal_a covenant_n i_o do_v call_v it_o such_o and_o i_o do_v think_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o most_o study_a by_o you_o of_o any_o other_o for_o why_o first_o i_o take_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n or_o our_o baptismal_a covenant_n to_o comprise_v the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n even_o all_o that_o than_o which_o no_o man_n as_o a_o mere_a christian_a be_v necessitate_v to_o know_v more_o and_o than_o which_o the_o mean_a ought_v not_o to_o know_v less_o no_o man_n in_o any_o civil_a contract_n can_v perform_v his_o bond_n without_o know_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o obligation_n no_o more_o can_v a_o christian_n be_v suppose_v to_o perform_v his_o covenant_n with_o god_n without_o know_v the_o nature_n term_n and_o condition_n of_o it_o second_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a that_o all_o youth_n shall_v comprehend_v the_o general_a nature_n term_n and_o condition_n of_o their_o baptismal_a covenant_n before_o they_o go_v to_o be_v confirm_v three_o and_o all_o person_n before_o they_o communicate_v in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n because_o in_o both_o these_o ordinance_n they_o ratify_v their_o baptismal_a covenant_n with_o god_n four_o and_o if_o it_o be_v consider_v that_o all_o person_n in_o order_n to_o prepare_v for_o death_n must_v strict_o examine_v themselves_o concern_v their_o failures_n in_o all_o and_o every_o the_o term_n and_o condition_n require_v on_o their_o part_n